Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n case_n govern_v verb_n 2,785 5 13.0027 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

may_v be_v otherwise_o answer_v that_o he_o on_o this_o wise_a speak_v thereof_o before_o he_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o utter_v his_o word_n d._n martyr_n see_v you_o will_v not_o have_v it_o that_o this_o round_a thing_n whereof_o this_o epiphanius_n say_v that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v bread_n nor_o yet_o a_o accident_n what_o then_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o this_o pronowne_a demonstrative_a hoc_fw-la this_o d._n tresham_n that_o can_v i_o not_o tell_v but_o that_o be_v show_v which_o christ_n himself_o mean_v let_v he_o be_v ask_v who_o do_v institute_v it_o but_o if_o it_o be_v speak_v concern_v bread_n it_o be_v mean_v before_o consecration_n the_o father_n as_o i_o have_v say_v must_v be_v read_v with_o favour_n d._n martyr_n in_o that_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n must_v be_v favourablie_o read_v i_o like_v it_o well_o and_o i_o know_v that_o sometime_o they_o must_v be_v interpret_v convenientlie_o howbeit_o when_o they_o speak_v the_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o pardon_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o epiphanius_n in_o this_o place_n have_v any_o need_n thereof_o he_o do_v sufficient_o maintain_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v very_o well_o of_o the_o same_o d._n tresham_n hilary_n in_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la as_o i_o remember_v say_v that_o the_o understanding_n of_o saieng_n must_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o saieng_n because_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o speech_n but_o the_o speech_n to_o the_o matter_n and_o therefore_o to_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o condition_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o affirm_v that_o epiphanius_n say_v that_o as_o touch_v that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o round_a figure_n the_o lord_n will_v pronounce_v this_o be_v my_o body_n not_o that_o there_o be_v true_a bread_n under_o the_o round_a figure_n but_o because_o it_o so_o seem_v and_o appear_v unto_o our_o sense_n and_o therefore_o i_o say_v that_o he_o must_v be_v read_v favourablie_o because_o his_o word_n pretend_v bread_n to_o remain_v which_o nevertheless_o do_v not_o remain_v d._n martyr_n that_o which_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o hilary_n help_v you_o but_o little_a see_v epiphanius_n can_v otherwise_o be_v understand_v but_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o grace_n say_v concern_v that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o round_a figure_n that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n therefore_o whether_o you_o will_v say_v that_o that_o round_a thing_n be_v bread_n or_o a_o accident_n he_o speak_v utterlie_o against_o you_o for_o by_o the_o same_o he_o name_v his_o body_n but_o that_o you_o may_v understand_v very_o true_a bread_n to_o be_v present_a i_o will_v show_v it_o most_o evident_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n christ_n take_v bread_n 26._o mat._n 26_o 26._o he_o bless_v break_v and_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n say_v etc._n etc._n those_o four_o verb_n to_o take_v to_o bless_v to_o break_v and_o to_o give_v govern_v no_o more_o but_o one_o accusative_a case_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n bread_n and_o therefore_o even_o as_o it_o be_v true_a bread_n while_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o bless_v no_o less_o true_a shall_v it_o be_v when_o it_o be_v break_v and_o give_v whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n give_v bread_n not_o accident_n alone_o otherwise_o the_o evangelist_n will_v have_v say_v that_o christ_n break_v his_o body_n and_o give_v his_o body_n but_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v he_o refer_v all_o unto_o bread_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o the_o evangelist_n have_v any_o need_n of_o favour_n d._n tresham_n i_o say_v with_o saint_n peter_n 20._o pet._n 1_o 20._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o a_o private_a interpretation_n the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n do_v cléerlie_o enough_o expound_v according_a to_o my_o assertion_n that_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n and_o that_o in_o put_v this_o verb_n give_v before_o he_o use_v a_o figure_n d._n martyr_n yet_o do_v not_o you_o satisfy_v i_o understand_v how_o that_o place_n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n must_v be_v understand_v for_o that_o which_o peter_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o a_o private_a interpretation_n that_o be_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v according_a to_o our_o own_o private_a affection_n i_o admit_v but_o you_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o further_v and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o you_o avouch_v of_o the_o father_n i_o have_v take_v testimony_n of_o they_o and_o have_v show_v that_o they_o be_v of_o my_o side_n and_o therefore_o i_o repeat_v these_o word_n christ_n take_v bread_n bless_a bread_n break_v bread_n &_o give_v bread_n so_o speak_v the_o father_n &_o so_o speak_v the_o scripture_n you_o run_v unto_o figure_n and_o you_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o we_o must_v use_v the_o spirit_n faith_n that_o both_o the_o bread_n be_v give_v and_o the_o body_n but_o the_o bread_n unto_o the_o mouth_n and_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o soul_n and_o unto_o faith_n but_o i_o see_v not_o where_o we_o shall_v seek_v the_o spirit_n except_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o affirm_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v give_v bread_n i_o mean_v and_o the_o body_n the_o which_o i_o also_o confess_v but_o you_o in_o reject_v the_o bread_n do_v not_o consent_v with_o the_o scripture_n d._n tresham_n the_o holy_a scripture_n must_v be_v expound_v with_o the_o selfsame_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o be_v indict_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v teach_v the_o good_a father_n that_o immediate_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v utter_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v of_o which_o mind_n be_v all_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n and_o i_o have_v not_o the_o father_n alone_a but_o christ_n himself_o also_o which_o promise_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o we_o his_o flesh_n he_o be_v faithful_a and_o his_o truth_n hang_v not_o of_o the_o father_n but_o of_o himself_o 51._o verse_n 51._o the_o bread_n say_v he_o which_o i_o shall_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o shall_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o i_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v bread_n bread_n bread_n bread_n and_o bread_n even_o until_o the_o last_o pronunciation_n of_o the_o word_n afterward_o it_o be_v no_o bread_n but_o flesh_n d._n martyr_n the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n say_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n that_o bread_n be_v give_v and_o that_o flesh_n be_v give_v why_o do_v you_o not_o then_o confess_v bread_n to_o be_v give_v also_o as_o the_o evangelist_n have_v evident_o write_v for_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n make_v on_o your_o side_n i_o have_v now_o show_v by_o many_o of_o their_o testimony_n that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a and_o i_o allow_v that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v expound_v with_o the_o selfsame_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o be_v indict_v but_o when_o they_o be_v otherwise_o expound_v of_o you_o than_o they_o mean_v that_o exposition_n do_v not_o proceed_v of_o that_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o be_v write_v for_o that_o spirit_n dissent_v not_o from_o they_o d._n tresham_n i_o say_v both_o but_o yet_o i_o understand_v the_o scripture_n not_o as_o you_o do_v since_o about_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n all_o controversy_n have_v evermore_o arisen_a for_o by_o the_o scripture_n arrius_n go_v about_o to_o take_v away_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n eutyches_n the_o heresy_n of_o nestor_n and_o eutyches_n by_o the_o scripture_n nestor_n and_o eutyches_n endeavour_v to_o take_v away_o his_o humanity_n by_o the_o scripture_n mane_n banish_v free_a will_n by_o the_o scripture_n pelagius_n extol_v free_a will_n above_o measure_n by_o the_o scripture_n luther_n defend_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o contrariwise_o by_o the_o scripture_n zuinglius_fw-la seem_v to_o himself_o to_o take_v away_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o eucharist_n and_o final_o all_o heretic_n and_o the_o devil_n have_v always_o say_v it_o be_v write_v and_o yet_o they_o err_v wherefore_o it_o appear_v that_o we_o must_v fly_v unto_o that_o spirit_n whereby_o the_o scripture_n be_v publish_v even_o as_o peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v 20._o 1._o pet_n 1_o 20._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o private_a interpretation_n and_o that_o spirit_n be_v promise_v unto_o the_o church_n d._n martyr_n heretic_n perhaps_o have_v the_o scripture_n but_o yet_o they_o have_v they_o not_o as_o it_o become_v they_o follow_v the_o show_n but_o not_o the_o sound_a sense_n but_o what_o church_n you_o tell_v i_o shall_v be_v follow_v spirit_n to_o the_o scripture_n
the_o bread_n as_o yet_o make_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n d._n martyr_n no_o sacramental_a sign_n according_a as_o we_o speak_v and_o to_o that_o which_o you_o infer_v by_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o determine_a word_n of_o consecration_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o then_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o sufficient_a i_o answer_v that_o it_o follow_v not_o for_o though_o it_o do_v appoint_v four_o or_o five_o word_n only_o whereby_o consecration_n shall_v preciselie_o be_v make_v yet_o do_v it_o faithful_o describe_v the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o mystery_n the_o which_o be_v sufficient_a wherefore_o we_o ought_v to_o repeat_v the_o same_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o both_o we_o may_v do_v and_o say_v that_o which_o christ_n do_v and_o say_v and_o this_o be_v command_v we_o when_o the_o lord_n say_v this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o 24_o luk._n 22_o 19_o 1._o co._n 11_o 24_o the_o which_o must_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o word_n as_o unto_o the_o deed_n for_o the_o lord_n mean_v not_o that_o when_o the_o five_o word_n be_v pronounce_v we_o shall_v think_v that_o we_o have_v perform_v so_o great_a a_o mystery_n m._n morgan_n he_o bless_v the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v he_o break_v the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v he_o give_v the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v therefore_o he_o give_v the_o bread_n before_o it_o be_v yet_o a_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n this_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v and_o say_v and_o when_o he_o say_v do_v these_o thing_n he_o mean_v as_o touch_v all_o those_o thing_n and_o not_o of_o one_o or_o two_o alone_a and_o he_o make_v it_o a_o sign_n by_o blessing_n by_o break_v by_o give_v and_o by_o add_v such_o thing_n as_o follow_v m._n morgan_n it_o follow_v that_o since_o christ_n give_v bread_n before_o he_o have_v finish_v all_o the_o word_n he_o give_v bread_n which_o be_v not_o consecrate_v see_v unto_o consecration_n all_o the_o word_n be_v require_v wherefore_o i_o be_v a_o minister_n and_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n when_o do_v i_o make_v the_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n even_o by_o say_v and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o christ_n say_v and_o do_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n when_o that_o action_n be_v perform_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v describe_v but_o whether_o you_o tend_v or_o what_o your_o meaning_n be_v i_o perceive_v not_o but_o that_o many_o word_n be_v waste_v in_o vain_a m._n morgan_n i_o will_v speak_v more_o plain_o the_o minister_n do_v all_o the_o thing_n that_o christ_n do_v otherwise_o they_o shall_v fail_v in_o the_o right_a use_n but_o the_o minister_n do_v not_o consecrate_v it_o for_o a_o sacrament_n before_o all_o the_o word_n be_v utter_v and_o therefore_o christ_n also_o do_v it_o not_o but_o if_o so_o be_v he_o give_v the_o bread_n before_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o word_n he_o give_v common_a bread_n but_o not_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n d._n martyr_n here_o have_v i_o answer_v already_o that_o christ_n give_v no_o sign_n before_o he_o have_v finish_v the_o action_n nor_o before_o he_o have_v say_v and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o say_v and_o when_o those_o thing_n be_v perform_v he_o give_v not_o a_o only_a substance_n of_o bread_n but_o he_o give_v the_o same_o with_o a_o condition_n adjoin_v the_o which_o be_v symbolical_a or_o signify_v first_o therefore_o he_o take_v bread_n but_o and_o if_o afterward_o by_o reason_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v and_o do_v there_o be_v add_v a_o sacramental_a or_o symbolical_a condition_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o disproove_v but_o that_o he_o give_v bread_n for_o he_o give_v both_o to_o wit_n bread_n &_o a_o sacrament_n neither_o be_v it_o requisite_a that_o you_o shall_v so_o cavil_v that_o christ_n give_v bread_n first_o before_o he_o utter_v the_o word_n for_o this_o may_v appear_v if_o only_o a_o respect_n be_v have_v unto_o the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o narration_n but_o let_v we_o set_v the_o action_n before_o our_o eye_n &_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o christ_n in_o give_v finish_v the_o word_n which_o be_v necessary_a so_o as_o this_o which_o you_o urge_v so_o sore_o be_v but_o a_o sophistical_a cavil_n for_o while_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o do_v break_v and_o give_v he_o say_v withal_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o unto_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v nothing_o want_v m._n morgan_n what_o do_v he_o give_v common_a bread_n or_o sacramental_a bread_n d._n martyr_n he_o give_v sacramental_a bread_n m._n morgan_n but_o yet_o he_o give_v it_o before_o he_o have_v pronounce_v this_o be_v my_o body_n so_o than_o he_o give_v no_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n say_v i_o these_o thing_n to_o the_o intent_n i_o may_v show_v that_o we_o can_v be_v blame_v when_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n give_v his_o body_n after_o the_o word_n be_v finish_v and_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o accusative_fw-mi case_n bread_n must_v not_o be_v join_v with_o the_o verb_n give_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o verb_n that_o go_v before_o d._n martyr_n no_o man_n blame_v you_o in_o this_o that_o you_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v after_o the_o ceremony_n be_v perform_v but_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o you_o exclude_v the_o bread_n for_o we_o must_v determine_v that_o as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o be_v give_v and_o that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o accusative_fw-mi case_n be_v govern_v of_o all_o those_o verb_n according_a as_o order_n and_o grammatical_a construction_n require_v neither_o be_v that_o true_a which_o you_o still_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n have_v first_o give_v it_o before_o he_o pronounce_v all_o the_o word_n since_o in_o give_v and_o distribute_v or_o break_v he_o finish_v the_o word_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o purpose_n here_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o enchantment_n to_o be_v imagine_v although_o all_o be_v do_v by_o the_o finish_n of_o one_o letter_n syllable_n or_o one_o silly_a word_n m._n morgan_n he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n what_o give_v he_o he_o give_v his_o body_n rather_o than_o bread_n for_o body_n be_v a_o nigh_a word_n unto_o those_o verb_n than_o be_v this_o word_n bread_n d._n martyr_n grammatical_a sense_n require_v that_o bread_n shall_v remain_v for_o all_o these_o verb_n do_v govern_v a_o accusative_a case_n neither_o be_v the_o nearness_n of_o place_n to_o be_v respect_v in_o this_o sentence_n for_o albeit_o that_o this_o particle_n my_o body_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o near_a speech_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o govern_v of_o those_o word_n he_o break_v he_o give_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v you_o but_o of_o the_o verb_n substantive_a est_fw-fr is._n but_o whereas_o it_o be_v write_v that_o christ_n first_o give_v before_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o be_v the_o usual_a figure_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o wit_n when_o a_o thing_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o a_o contrary_a order_n but_o yet_o not_o proper_o for_o it_o be_v admit_v for_o a_o necessity_n of_o set_v forth_o the_o matter_n since_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v do_v both_o together_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o give_v and_o that_o he_o speak_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o strife_n to_o be_v make_v for_o this_o matter_n m._n morgan_n if_o it_o be_v the_o figure_n hysteron_fw-gr proteron_fw-gr then_o be_v the_o word_n body_n near_o unto_o the_o verb_n give_v than_o be_v the_o accusative_a case_n bread_n and_o then_o this_o word_n body_n be_v as_o well_o construe_v with_o the_o verb_n give_v as_o be_v that_o word_n bread_n and_o this_o make_v as_o well_o for_o we_o as_o for_o you_o &_o the_o case_n be_v equal_a on_o both_o part_n and_o so_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o answer_v this_o other_o day_n be_v good_a to_o wit_n that_o christ_n rather_o give_v his_o body_n than_o the_o bread_n d._n martyr_n say_v what_o you_o listen_v that_o this_o phrase_n make_v for_o your_o part_n the_o phrase_n itself_o do_v plain_o deny_v it_o and_o show_v evident_o that_o bread_n must_v be_v retain_v wherefore_o my_o argument_n remain_v invincible_a that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v some_o way_n give_v i_o deny_v not_o that_o which_o be_v give_v be_v both_o namely_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o why_o you_o exclude_v bread_n you_o have_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o and_o the_o form_n of_o speak_v do_v manifest_o make_v against_o you_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o equality_n of_o the_o case_n between_o us._n neither_o as_o i_o have_v say_v in_o a_o grammatical_a construction_n must_v the_o near_o
place_n of_o the_o word_n but_o the_o govern_n of_o the_o verb_n be_v regard_v and_o therefore_o this_o other_o day_n it_o be_v not_o well_o answer_v when_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o affirm_v to_o be_v give_v as_o the_o bread_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o which_o by_o a_o necessity_n of_o grammatical_a construction_n be_v prove_v to_o remain_v m._n morgan_n theophylactus_n say_v upon_o mark_n the_o 14_o chapter_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o i_o say_v which_o you_o receive_v for_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n and_o a_o kind_n of_o a_o example_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n but_o it_o be_v change_v even_o into_o the_o very_a self_n body_n of_o christ_n the_o latin_a copy_n be_v false_a where_o you_o shall_v read_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v change_v into_o it_o the_o greek_a text_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thus_o you_o plain_o see_v that_o this_o father_n say_v that_o this_o bread_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n but_o be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n d._n martyr_n first_o of_o all_o understand_v as_o touch_v theophylactus_n that_o he_o be_v not_o of_o any_o such_o authority_n that_o if_o he_o do_v make_v direct_o against_o we_o we_o shall_v make_v any_o great_a account_n of_o he_o for_o he_o upon_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o john_n say_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n do_v plain_o err_v as_o touch_v the_o proceed_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o live_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v in_o a_o corrupt_a time_n in_o the_o latin_a book_n which_o i_o have_v see_v for_o the_o greek_a copy_n i_o have_v not_o meet_v withal_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v change_v into_o it_o howbeit_o whether_o the_o greek_a copy_n have_v it_o so_o or_o not_o i_o pass_v but_o little_a since_o i_o do_v admit_v some_o kind_n of_o change_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n or_o example_n in_o theophylactus_n the_o word_n be_v thus_o for_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o figure_n and_o pattern_n which_o we_o grant_v to_o be_v true_a see_v the_o bread_n be_v not_o set_v down_o of_o we_o to_o be_v a_o bare_a sign_n and_o a_o naked_a figure_n and_o without_o doubt_n unless_o that_o same_o particle_n only_o be_v have_v theophylactus_n alone_o may_v not_o stand_v against_o all_o the_o other_o father_n who_o acknowledge_v both_o a_o figure_n and_o a_o example_n as_o do_v tertullian_n basil_n augustine_n theodoretus_n and_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o the_o rest_n furthermore_o i_o understand_v the_o change_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v sacramental_a since_o it_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o before_o it_o be_v not_o for_o as_o augustine_n unto_o boniface_n testify_v and_o as_o we_o have_v oftentimes_o cite_v sacrament_n have_v their_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n wherefore_o the_o sacrament_n say_v he_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v the_o change_n such_o as_o it_o can_v cast_v away_o the_o former_a substance_n and_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o theophylactus_n himself_o that_o he_o so_o understand_v it_o for_o upon_o john_n the_o sixth_o chapter_n he_o say_v he_o that_o eat_v i_o shall_v live_v for_o i_o while_o after_o a_o sort_n he_o be_v mingle_v with_o i_o and_o transelementate_v into_o i_o you_o hear_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v transelementate_v into_o christ_n and_o yet_o you_o see_v we_o retain_v the_o substance_n which_o we_o have_v before_o why_o will_v you_o not_o understand_v the_o selfsame_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v as_o touch_v bread_n m._n morgan_n to_o the_o first_o when_o you_o say_v that_o theophylactus_n one_o while_o err_v i_o answer_v if_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o like_a reason_n you_o may_v refuse_v augustine_n which_o allow_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n image_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v error_n if_o we_o shall_v follow_v your_o opinion_n d._n martyr_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v utterlie_o reject_v but_o i_o mean_v to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v degree_n of_o the_o father_n to_o let_v you_o understand_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o they_o all_o be_v not_o alike_o which_o must_v chéeflie_o be_v consider_v according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o age_n wherein_o they_o live_v and_o in_o that_o he_o disagré_v from_o the_o latin_a church_n so_o express_o in_o the_o controversy_n touch_v the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o he_o happen_v into_o in_o those_o latter_a time_n when_o vehement_a dissension_n be_v between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n in_o the_o very_a which_o time_n begin_v now_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o bud_v forth_o but_o of_o augustine_n and_o such_o as_o he_o be_v the_o case_n be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o they_o live_v in_o the_o pure_a time_n and_o as_o for_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o how_o much_o or_o how_o he_o dissent_v from_o we_o a_o other_o place_n shall_v serve_v to_o declare_v it_o but_o as_o touch_v that_o he_o allow_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n i_o know_v nothing_o thereof_o m._n morgan_n theophylactus_n be_v altogether_o on_o my_o side_n while_o he_o say_v upon_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o my_o flesh_n but_o it_o be_v my_o flesh_n for_o by_o the_o mystical_a word_n the_o bread_n be_v transform_v &_o albeit_o it_o seem_v bread_n unto_o we_o yet_o be_v it_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n you_o see_v that_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o matthew_n he_o have_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o very_a same_o word_n &_o he_o add_v wherefore_o there_o appear_v bread_n that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o condescend_v to_o our_o infirmity_n and_o let_v we_o put_v the_o case_n that_o he_o will_v have_v teach_v transubstantiation_n what_o else_o can_v he_o have_v say_v or_o with_o what_o more_o manifest_a word_n can_v he_o have_v utter_v it_o for_o again_o upon_o the_o 14._o of_o mark_n he_o say_v it_o keep_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o show_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o it_o be_v transelementate_v into_o the_o power_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n d._n martyr_n as_o touch_v this_o change_n whereof_o theophylactus_n make_v mention_n in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n we_o doubt_v not_o for_o it_o be_v sacramental_a and_o as_o you_o cite_v but_o even_o now_o he_o say_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o power_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o he_o say_v not_o into_o flesh_n and_o blood_n the_o which_o we_o also_o will_v grant_v forsomuch_o as_o sacrament_n be_v name_v by_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o signify_v and_o by_o they_o god_n give_v his_o grace_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o power_n &_o strength_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o they_o signify_v and_o when_o he_o say_v they_o be_v transelementate_v or_o change_v into_o the_o power_n of_o flesh_n &_o blood_n he_o show_v how_o we_o must_v understand_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n namely_o that_o by_o these_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n christ_n how_o we_o must_v understand_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v work_v in_o we_o the_o merit_n fruit_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n crucify_v for_o us._n and_o we_o grant_v unto_o theophylactus_n as_o we_o have_v say_v a_o sacramental_a change_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n say_v not_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v a_o figure_n this_o if_o he_o understand_v absolute_o without_o exception_n he_o have_v all_o the_o father_n against_o he_o for_o basil_n say_v that_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o example_n a_o pattern_n and_o augustine_n a_o figure_n and_o sign_n and_o whereas_o he_o name_v it_o the_o show_n of_o bread_n it_o nothing_o hinder_v the_o true_a nature_n and_o substance_n thereof_o for_o this_o word_n species_n form_n among_o the_o father_n as_o i_o have_v above_o show_v signify_v a_o true_a nature_n of_o thing_n m._n morgan_n so_o may_v we_o likewise_o well_o say_v that_o the_o virtue_n may_v signify_v the_o body_n and_o the_o same_o theophylactus_n upon_o matthew_n the_o 26._o chapter_n say_v this_o sentence_n this_o be_v my_o body_n show_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v sanctify_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o no_o figure_n correspondent_a for_o he_o say_v not_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n again_o this_o verb_n transformatur_fw-la be_v
of_o the_o simple_a that_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o and_o every_o one_o from_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n you_o forbid_v man_n to_o read_v they_o at_o all_o unless_o they_o be_v translate_v by_o yourselves_o we_o grant_v indeed_o that_o our_o translation_n differ_v in_o word_n but_o very_o seldom_o in_o sense_n if_o at_o any_o time_n in_o sense_n yet_o never_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n as_o for_o differ_v in_o word_n we_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o mortal_a man_n two_o three_o or_o mo_z that_o without_o a_o apparent_a miracle_n can_v speak_v write_v and_o interpret_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n after_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n with_o the_o very_a same_o word_n which_o interpreter_n notwithstanding_o while_o they_o keep_v the_o true_a sense_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v though_o they_o vary_v in_o word_n wherefore_o to_o say_v the_o very_a truth_n the_o difference_n of_o our_o translation_n be_v rather_o in_o sound_n of_o word_n than_o in_o sense_n or_o meaning_n and_o where_o there_o be_v any_o alteration_n they_o be_v seldom_o any_o correction_n but_o explication_n but_o put_v the_o case_n there_o be_v some_o few_o escape_n of_o small_a weight_n in_o some_o of_o the_o first_o edition_n &_o perhaps_o some_o few_o in_o the_o latter_a by_o reason_n of_o mistake_v some_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n or_o syrian_a word_n or_o phrase_n shall_v this_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v of_o none_o effect_v shall_v the_o people_n for_o this_o cause_n not_o once_o look_v into_o the_o whole_a scripture_n for_o their_o own_o comfort_n and_o edification_n shall_v the_o few_o small_a fault_n of_o a_o interpreter_n forbid_v a_o wound_a conscience_n to_o seek_v a_o medicine_n for_o his_o malady_n and_o a_o salve_n for_o his_o sore_n shall_v man_n be_v deny_v the_o use_n of_o all_o vessel_n gold_n and_o silver_n if_o any_o crack_n or_o flaw_n happen_v unto_o they_o shall_v every_o precious_a jewel_n that_o be_v not_o adorn_v with_o the_o fine_a gold_n and_o with_o the_o best_a foil_n be_v cast_v away_o shall_v every_o good_a land_n that_o have_v a_o balk_v or_o bunch_n be_v leave_v unmanured_a shall_v every_o good_a man_n that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v service_n in_o the_o commonweal_n be_v abandon_v for_o commit_v one_o or_o two_o small_a offence_n if_o we_o see_v no_o precious_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o for_o any_o accidental_a blemish_n be_v contemn_v &_o cast_v away_o shall_v the_o rich_a diamond_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v keep_v from_o the_o use_n of_o christian_n because_o of_o some_o few_o word_n misconstrue_v by_o some_o unaduised_a man_n will_v you_o deny_v the_o new_a testament_n late_o translate_v by_o your_o jesuit_n into_o english_a to_o all_o the_o english_a pretend_v catholic_n because_o some_o certain_a word_n be_v misinterpret_v therein_o some_o childish_o affectate_v &_o some_o in_o the_o very_a sense_n itself_o corrupt_v you_o shall_v have_v deal_v more_o charitable_o with_o we_o and_o not_o so_o uniustlie_o have_v accuse_v all_o our_o translation_n but_o especial_o if_o you_o have_v spy_v any_o thing_n amiss_o in_o the_o first_o edition_n which_o be_v mend_v in_o the_o latter_a you_o shall_v not_o so_o malicious_o have_v lay_v those_o thing_n to_o our_o charge_n and_o with_o more_o travel_n you_o shall_v have_v learn_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o greek_a before_o you_o have_v object_v unto_o we_o such_o thing_n as_o now_o turn_v to_o your_o own_o shame_n and_o reproof_n i_o think_v to_o have_v speak_v somewhat_o at_o large_a in_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o translation_n but_o since_o that_o learned_a divine_a master_n d._n fulke_o who_o great_a labour_n and_o diligence_n in_o the_o church_n i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v have_v so_o strong_o and_o so_o late_o confute_v all_o the_o causis_fw-la object_v against_o the_o same_o as_o all_o you_o that_o be_v the_o adversary_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a by_o all_o your_o reply_n to_o shake_v the_o credit_n of_o that_o book_n much_o less_o to_o convince_v or_o disproove_v it_o therefore_o i_o pass_v it_o over_o with_o a_o word_n or_o two_o assure_v you_o that_o we_o have_v do_v nothing_o parciallie_o but_o so_o far_o as_o god_n have_v lend_v we_o his_o talon_n we_o have_v search_v out_o both_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a in_o all_o those_o place_n wherein_o may_v be_v any_o mistrust_n of_o corruption_n and_o wrong_a interpretation_n again_o if_o we_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a copy_n have_v translate_v otherwise_o than_o your_o latin_a translation_n will_v bear_v so_o long_o as_o the_o same_o agree_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v warrant_n enough_o for_o we_o to_o use_v the_o same_o and_o too_o great_a rashness_n of_o you_o to_o deny_v it_o furthermore_o we_o confess_v that_o we_o in_o our_o translation_n be_v not_o so_o precise_a but_o that_o where_o the_o word_n of_o the_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n or_o latin_a be_v so_o difficult_a as_o they_o can_v be_v livelie_a express_v word_n for_o word_n especial_o in_o the_o english_a tongue_n we_o have_v sometime_o add_v a_o necessary_a word_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n to_o be_v understand_v which_o you_o have_v not_o do_v in_o your_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o have_v you_o leave_v such_o unperfect_a sentence_n and_o have_v give_v such_o absurd_a term_n as_o every_o good_a man_n do_v pity_n and_o lament_v your_o great_a fruitless_a labour_n furthermore_o it_o may_v be_v that_o we_o have_v not_o in_o every_o word_n keep_v the_o proper_a english_a of_o the_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n as_o neither_o you_o have_v do_v altogether_o out_o of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a in_o your_o translation_n yet_o nevertheless_o will_v the_o circumstance_n always_o bear_v the_o same_o and_o so_o can_v it_o not_o be_v justly_o say_v that_o we_o have_v any_o way_n alter_v the_o sense_n but_o now_o will_v i_o not_o have_v you_o think_v that_o we_o have_v speak_v this_o as_o though_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o teach_v can_v be_v defend_v unless_o our_o translation_n be_v justify_v at_o large_a for_o our_o doctrine_n be_v unreproovable_a and_o that_o which_o we_o defend_v be_v sound_a and_o the_o very_a same_o that_o christ_n leave_v in_o his_o word_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o father_n teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o writing_n and_o have_v many_o time_n seal_v with_o our_o own_o blood_n final_o that_o we_o have_v confirm_v with_o innumerable_a book_n and_o writing_n and_o that_o we_o will_v still_o steadfast_o defend_v so_o long_o as_o we_o have_v breath_n in_o our_o body_n whereupon_o also_o we_o conclude_v that_o since_o all_o our_o translation_n be_v consonant_a to_o this_o doctrine_n consonant_n to_o the_o original_a copy_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n and_o consonant_a to_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o father_n teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o be_v sufficient_o authorise_v of_o themselves_o without_o receive_v any_o further_a defence_n from_o us._n but_o what_o do_v you_o of_o the_o seminary_n of_o rheims_n think_v if_o we_o shall_v receive_v into_o our_o church_n the_o translation_n which_o you_o yourselves_o late_o make_v simple_o i_o mean_v and_o nakedlie_o without_o any_o of_o your_o corrupt_a note_n and_o blasphemous_a gloss_n will_v not_o the_o very_a same_o confirm_v all_o our_o opinion_n in_o the_o chief_a matter_n as_o much_o in_o a_o manner_n as_o our_o own_o translation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o your_o fantastical_a &_o new_a devise_a term_n that_o can_v make_v christ_n true_a religion_n contrary_a to_o itself_o that_o can_v alter_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o can_v either_o enfeeble_v our_o true_a &_o ground_a position_n or_o strengthen_v your_o false_a &_o forge_a objection_n neither_o can_v the_o name_n of_o chalice_n in_o steed_n of_o cup_n turn_v our_o communion_n into_o your_o mass_n nor_o supersubstantiall_a in_o steed_n of_o daily_a or_o true_a bread_n from_o heaven_n in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n turn_v natural_a bread_n into_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n nor_o host_n in_o steed_n of_o sacrifice_n convert_v our_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_a prayer_n alm_n and_o mortification_n into_o the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o hang_v up_o idol_n of_o the_o altar_n nor_o can_v the_o name_n of_o penance_n for_o repentance_n establish_v your_o satisfaction_n nor_o condign_a for_o worthy_a take_v away_o the_o worthiness_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o erect_v your_o merit_n of_o condignity_n nor_o invocate_v for_o call_v upon_o establish_v your_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o yet_o any_o other_o of_o your_o new_a inkpot_n term_n
a_o christian_a do_v he_o do_v they_o by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n those_o thing_n which_o the_o philosopher_n do_v according_a to_o moral_a precept_n they_o do_v they_o by_o the_o guide_n of_o humane_a reason_n the_o philosopher_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n because_o they_o so_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v honest_a and_o right_a but_o the_o christian_n because_o god_n have_v so_o decree_v those_o do_v think_v to_o profit_n and_o make_v perfect_a themselves_o these_o because_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n must_v be_v obey_v those_o do_v give_v credit_n to_o themselves_o but_o these_o give_v credit_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n which_o he_o have_v make_v those_o seek_v the_o love_n of_o themselves_o these_o be_v drive_v by_o the_o love_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o of_o this_o manifold_a difference_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n as_o touch_v the_o matter_n do_v please_v god_n and_o by_o his_o judgement_n be_v condemn_v other_o which_o knowledge_n be_v prefer_v above_o other_o so_o now_o we_o see_v that_o the_o speculative_a knowledge_n be_v prefer_v above_o the_o active_a for_o do_v be_v ordain_v for_o contemplation_n and_o not_o contrariwise_o and_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o that_o which_o be_v ordain_v for_o another_o thing_n be_v less_o honourable_a than_o it_o but_o it_o be_v object_v that_o the_o contemplative_a kind_n do_v belong_v unto_o action_n therefore_o indeed_o we_o behold_v nature_n that_o we_o may_v make_v much_o of_o the_o author_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o we_o seek_v to_o know_v god_n to_o the_o intent_n we_o may_v worship_v he_o and_o our_o divinity_n be_v for_o this_o cause_n by_o some_o call_v actual_a howbeit_o these_o man_n reason_v after_o this_o manner_n be_v excéedinglie_o deceive_v for_o no_o science_n be_v therefore_o call_v actual_a because_o the_o work_n attain_v unto_o that_o knowledge_n except_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n be_v perform_v which_o be_v first_o know_v when_o we_o behold_v nature_n and_o the_o heaven_n although_o we_o obtain_v thereby_o a_o worship_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n yet_o such_o a_o knowledge_n must_v not_o be_v call_v actual_a because_o that_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o pass_v which_o we_o behold_v for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o can_v make_v nature_n and_o heaven_n and_o other_o work_n which_o follow_v thereof_o accidental_o they_o be_v say_v to_o behold_v they_o for_o not_o all_o man_n which_o behold_v these_o thing_n do_v love_n and_o worship_n god_n nay_o rather_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o most_o far_o from_o he_o again_o the_o work_n which_o follow_v that_o knowledge_n and_o also_o our_o divinity_n have_v respect_n unto_o this_o that_o we_o may_v know_v god_n more_o and_o more_o until_o we_o shall_v behold_v he_o face_n to_o face_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o christ_n our_o saviour_n confirm_v this_o opinion_n say_v 3._o john_n 17_o 3._o this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_o true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v the_o three_o chapter_n concern_v prophecy_n out_o of_o the_o first_o of_o samuel_n the_o 19_o chapter_n verse_n 33._o see_v therefore_o that_o god_n will_v be_v know_v unto_o man_n by_o pprophecy_n i_o think_v it_o not_o from_o the_o purpose_n to_o speak_v somewhat_o thereof_o and_o that_o i_o may_v do_v it_o the_o more_o brief_o and_o plain_o question_n a_o distinguish_v of_o this_o question_n i_o will_v first_o show_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o name_n or_o word_n prophesy_v then_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o next_o the_o definition_n and_o last_o the_o property_n and_o effect_n as_o touch_v the_o name_n of_o pprophecy_n prophesy_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n prophesy_v a_o prophet_n be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n call_v navi_fw-la which_o noun_n come_v of_o the_o hebrew_n verb_n bornwell_n that_o signify_v to_o come_v and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o passive_a conjugation_n niphal_n 8._o look_v in_o the_o four_o part_n cap._n 1._o art_n 8._o khimhi_n do_v interpret_v pprophecy_n to_o be_v a_o certain_a faculty_n receive_v from_o god._n for_o prophet_n do_v suffer_v a_o certain_a breathe_n on_o they_o and_o instinct_n from_o god_n and_o that_o word_n do_v signify_v sometime_o a_o interpreter_n or_o messenger_n and_o a_o prophet_n be_v call_v sometime_o in_o hebrew_n roe_n that_o be_v a_o seer_n sometime_o choose_v that_o be_v a_o watchman_n &_o sometime_o isch_n eloim_n that_o be_v a_o man_n of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o first_o of_o sam._n the_o 9_o chapter_n 10._o sam._n 9_o 10._o and_o first_o of_o paralipo_n the_o 29._o in_o the_o greek_a he_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o foretell_v or_o as_o some_o rather_o will_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o show_v whereupon_o among_o the_o latin_n temple_n be_v call_v phana_n and_o as_o festus_n pompeius_n think_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v call_v prophet_n there_o be_v also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n interpreter_n which_o do_v service_n to_o the_o great_a prophet_n they_o be_v also_o call_v among_o the_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o latin_n mad_a man_n be_v call_v fanatici_fw-la yet_o further_o they_o be_v call_v of_o the_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o stir_v up_o and_o drive_v forward_o they_o be_v call_v in_o latin_a vates_fw-la as_o some_o suppose_v of_o speak_v although_o there_o be_v that_o think_v otherwise_o a_o prophet_n be_v he_o which_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o spirit_n foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v 26._o the_o cause_n of_o prophesy_n the_o matter_n of_o prophesieng_v prophecy_n be_v use_v about_o thing_n past_a present_a &_o to_o come_v acts._n 5_o 3._o 2._o king_n 5_o 26._o 2_o now_o that_o we_o may_v also_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o the_o cause_n a_o prophet_n be_v occupy_v about_o heavenly_a and_o hide_a matter_n sometime_o he_o see_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v present_a as_o peter_n do_v of_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n and_o elizeus_fw-la of_o gehezi_n say_v be_v not_o my_o spirit_n present_a with_o thou_o sometime_o he_o see_v thing_n that_o be_v past_a as_o moses_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o as_o touch_v thing_n to_o come_v no_o man_n doubt_v but_o he_o foresé_v they_o also_o they_o which_o expound_v other_o man_n prophecy_n be_v prophet_n word_n a_o prophet_n be_v a_o interpreter_n of_o the_o word_n for_o so_o be_v aaron_n say_v to_o be_v the_o prophet_n of_o moses_n unto_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o expounder_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v prophet_n also_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o prophet_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n wherefore_o paul_n say_v that_o every_o man_n pray_v or_o prophesieng_v etc._n etc._n and_o in_o genesis_n 4._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 4._o god_n answer_v abimelech_n concern_v abraham_n 7._o gen._n 20_o 7._o when_o he_o have_v take_v his_o wife_n from_o he_o give_v he_o his_o wife_n again_o for_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n other_o a_o prophet_n must_v pray_v for_o other_o and_o shall_v pray_v for_o thou_o and_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 14._o chapter_n set_v forth_o more_o at_o large_a the_o office_n of_o a_o prophet_n when_o you_o come_v together_o say_v he_o every_o one_o have_v a_o psalm_n 27_o 1._o cor._n 14_o 27_o or_o have_v doctrine_n or_o have_v revelation_n or_o have_v interpretation_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o edifieng_v they_o may_v also_o make_v hymn_n and_o thanksgiving_a and_o exhort_v the_o people_n for_o paul_n say_v he_o that_o prophesi_v speak_v doctrine_n 3._o ibidem_fw-la 3._o exhortation_n and_o consolation_n which_o faculty_n pertain_v to_o the_o mind_n and_o power_n of_o understanding_n and_o a_o prophet_n differ_v from_o a_o priest_n priest_n wherein_o prophet_n differ_v from_o priest_n in_o that_o a_o priest_n shall_v not_o only_o exhort_v teach_v and_o comfort_n but_o also_o minister_v holy_a service_n which_o thing_n a_o prophet_n may_v not_o do_v beside_o the_o priest_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n the_o prophet_n be_v of_o other_o tribe_n moreover_o the_o priest_n may_v err_v &_o often_o do_v err_v but_o the_o true_a prophet_n in_o that_o they_o be_v prophet_n can_v not_o err_v indeed_o they_o sometime_o add_v somewhat_o of_o their_o own_o but_o therein_o they_o be_v not_o prophet_n last_o the_o priest_n be_v choose_v only_o by_o succession_n and_o have_v a_o ordinary_a ministry_n but_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v by_o a_o extraordinary_a mean_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 3_o the_o form_n of_o prophesieng_v be_v the_o revelation_n of_o god_n
salvation_n sake_n but_o to_o make_v a_o proof_n or_o trial_n god_n be_v tempt_v and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la the_o 38._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o christ_n shall_v cast_v himself_o down_o headlong_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n except_o for_o trial_n sake_n which_o have_v be_v to_o tempt_v god_n but_o it_o fare_v not_o thus_o with_o jonathas_n for_o first_o he_o want_v not_o faith_n secondlie_o he_o be_v lead_v through_o necessity_n and_o great_a profit_n namely_o that_o he_o may_v understand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o beléeve_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v rule_v by_o his_o mighty_a power_n and_o that_o the_o tongue_n even_o of_o ungodlie_a man_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o speak_v by_o he_o and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v oracle_n how_o it_o happen_v that_o god_n take_v the_o philistine_n word_n for_o a_o oracle_n that_o the_o philistine_n voice_n be_v hear_v as_o a_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o the_o government_n of_o god_n be_v not_o restrain_v to_o the_o elect_a only_o but_o the_o affection_n saieng_n and_o do_n even_o of_o wicked_a man_n be_v direct_v by_o he_o to_o serve_v his_o glory_n doubtless_o the_o egyptian_n be_v naughty_a people_n 3●_n exod._n 12_o 3●_n yet_o god_n win_v their_o goodwill_n towards_o the_o jew_n at_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o egypt_n so_o as_o they_o be_v content_a to_o lend_v they_o both_o garment_n plate_n and_o jewel_n as_o well_o gold_n as_o silver_n 14_o 1._o sa._n 17_o 14_o god_n turn_v the_o hart_n of_o absolom_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o harken_v unto_o the_o most_o crafty_a counsel_n of_o achitophel_n god_n stir_v up_o roboam_n 15_o 1._o kin._n 12_o 15_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hearken_v unto_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o sage_a man_n 1._o prou._n 21_o 1._o for_o as_o solomon_n say_v the_o heart_n of_o king_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o conclude_v all_o our_o affection_n thought_n and_o speech_n be_v direct_v by_o his_o power_n wherein_o if_o jonathas_n have_v not_o persuade_v himself_o how_o can_v he_o have_v seek_v or_o take_v a_o sign_n at_o the_o mouth_n of_o wicked_a man_n certeinlie_o other_o know_v not_o to_o what_o end_n god_n will_v direct_v the_o saieng_n and_o do_n of_o man_n jonathas_n do_v understand_v it_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n 6_o this_o be_v not_o that_o kind_n of_o divination_n 10_o this_o kind_n of_o divination_n be_v not_o forbid_v deut._n 18_o 10_o which_o the_o scripture_n forbid_v when_o it_o be_v command_v let_v there_o be_v no_o soothsaier_n among_o you_o jerom_n say_v that_o the_o word_n divination_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v always_o take_v in_o the_o worse_a part_n for_o whereas_o man_n be_v over_o greedy_a to_o know_v thing_n to_o come_v therefore_o many_o guile_n and_o illusion_n be_v minister_v unto_o they_o forbid_v to_o divine_a thing_n come_v of_o necessary_a cause_n be_v not_o forbid_v but_o see_v that_o thing_n to_o come_v do_v depend_v upon_o certain_a and_o necessary_a cause_n therefore_o they_o appertain_v not_o unto_o that_o kind_n of_o divination_n which_o be_v forbid_v for_o the_o eclipse_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o sun_n and_o the_o traiection_n opposition_n and_o meeting_n together_o of_o star_n be_v know_v to_o learned_a man_n how_o they_o shall_v be_v many_o year_n to_o come_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o cause_n go_v before_o also_o thing_n that_o common_o change_v may_v be_v foresee_v by_o probable_a sign_n as_o a_o disease_n or_o death_n may_v be_v perceive_v by_o a_o physician_n god_n thing_n contingent_a be_v foresee_v only_o of_o god_n but_o thing_n contingent_a which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o which_o sway_n equal_o as_o well_o one_o way_n as_o another_o be_v not_o foresee_v but_o of_o god_n only_o for_o he_o alone_o know_v to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n every_o thing_n tend_v wherefore_o they_o that_o profess_v such_o skill_n do_v commit_v sacrilege_n many_o such_o devise_n do_v the_o devil_n teach_v the_o heathen_a people_n as_o to_o observe_v matter_n by_o the_o entrail_n of_o beast_n by_o the_o sing_n look_a &_o feed_n of_o bird_n wherefore_o they_o be_v charmer_n soothsaier_n and_o observer_n of_o such_o thing_n moreover_o they_o have_v among_o they_o from_o the_o same_o schoolmaster_n divine_a upon_o dream_n lot_n prophecy_n and_o oracle_n cicero_n in_o his_o book_n of_o divination_n divination_n two_o principal_a sort_n of_o superstitious_a divination_n reduce_v all_o these_o to_o two_o sort_n for_o some_o he_o say_v be_v natural_a and_o some_o artificial_a and_o that_o those_o be_v artificial_a when_o as_o knowledge_n be_v gather_v by_o the_o mark_v and_o observe_v of_o certain_a thing_n as_o in_o entrail_n and_o soothsaieng_n and_o such_o like_a but_o that_o natural_a be_v those_o which_o happen_v as_o unto_o soothsaier_n furious_a person_n and_o dreamer_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v naught_o because_o that_o part_n which_o belong_v only_o unto_o god_n be_v ascribe_v only_o unto_o man_n but_o to_o come_v again_o to_o the_o matter_n this_o part_n of_o divination_n 31._o look_v in_o 1._o kin._n 20_o 31._o which_o jonathas_n follow_v be_v call_v in_o latin_a omen_n which_o as_o festus_n think_v be_v as_o it_o be_v oreman_n for_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a foretell_v which_o slip_v out_o of_o a_o man_n mouth_n with_o some_o fury_n so_o the_o roman_n when_o they_o be_v mind_v to_o fly_v and_o leave_v their_o city_n and_o that_o the_o standerd-bearer_n have_v fix_v their_o banner_n in_o the_o market_n place_n and_o have_v say_v here_o will_v it_o be_v best_a for_o we_o that_o speech_n be_v take_v for_o a_o sign_n of_o good_a luck_n and_o a_o forespeaking_a of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v indeed_o so_o do_v jonathas_n by_o the_o philistine_n word_n which_o they_o speak_v unaduisedlie_o gather_v that_o god_n will_v give_v he_o the_o victory_n and_o deliver_v they_o into_o his_o hand_n and_o certeinlie_o the_o ethnike_v in_o use_v this_o mean_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v but_o jonathas_n not_o so_o for_o he_o be_v stir_v thereunto_o by_o god_n but_o so_o be_v not_o they_o so_o gedeon_n follow_v a_o forespéech_n 36._o judge_n 6_o 36._o when_o he_o fight_v against_o the_o madianites_fw-la jonathas_n when_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o imitate_v jonathas_n but_o we_o must_v follow_v neither_o jonathas_n nor_o gedeon_n unless_o we_o know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o we_o be_v move_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o they_o be_v for_o if_o we_o will_v by_o the_o reason_n and_o art_n of_o man_n foretell_v thing_n contingent_a or_o that_o may_v happen_v afterward_o we_o shall_v justly_o and_o du_o be_v blame_v if_o example_n be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o common_a law_n they_o shall_v provoke_v we_o to_o follow_v they_o but_o if_o they_o be_v not_o we_o must_v rather_o wonder_v at_o they_o than_o follow_v they_o this_o caution_n must_v be_v use_v in_o example_n the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o miracle_n and_o what_o power_n they_o be_v of_o to_o establish_v faith_n and_o doctrine_n in_o miracle_n two_o thing_n be_v special_o to_o be_v consider_v first_o end_n in_o judge_n chap._n 6_o at_o the_o end_n what_o miracle_n be_v and_o secondlie_o how_o much_o and_o in_o what_o sort_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o ask_v they_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v pala_n or_o niphla_n from_o whence_o be_v derive_v the_o noun_n niphlaoth_n or_o miphleoth_n word_n the_o etymology_n of_o word_n by_o which_o word_n be_v note_v thing_n secret_a from_o other_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o worthiness_n and_o excellency_n separate_v i_o mean_v and_o wonder_a the_o grecian_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v to_o marvel_v the_o latin_n call_v they_o miracula_fw-la that_o be_v miracle_n because_o they_o be_v worthy_a of_o admiration_n they_o call_v they_o also_o prodigia_fw-la monstra_fw-la &_o portenta_fw-la that_o be_v thing_n prodigious_a monstrous_a or_o that_o be_v seldom_o see_v to_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o by_o these_o thing_n god_n mean_v to_o show_v that_o somewhat_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v or_o be_v do_v above_o hope_n or_o expectation_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a order_n of_o thing_n wherefore_o extol_v miracle_n great_o extol_v see_v that_o miracle_n be_v do_v beyond_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n they_o cause_v admiration_n and_o certeinlie_o there_o be_v very_o many_o miracle_n which_o be_v make_v famous_a by_o writer_n as_o the_o temple_n of_o diana_n in_o ephesus_n the_o tomb_n of_o artemisia_n queen_n of_o caria_n the_o huge_a image_n of_o the_o sun_n at_o rhodes_n the_o wall_n of_o babylon_n &_o a_o great_a many_o other_o such_o thing_n wherefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o 16._o chapter_n against_o the_o
therefore_o have_v perish_v with_o other_o and_o by_o that_o mean_n sorrow_n have_v be_v add_v unto_o a_o righteous_a father_n which_o thing_n god_n will_v not_o if_o they_o have_v be_v good_a and_o they_o also_o have_v beget_v other_o and_o perhaps_o noah_n himself_o other_o also_o all_o which_o if_o god_n will_v have_v save_v for_o noah_n sake_n the_o ark_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v much_o big_a whereby_o noah_n have_v be_v more_o weary_v in_o the_o build_n of_o it_o than_o reason_n will_v this_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o pleasant_a devise_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o it_o shall_v appear_v sufficient_o to_o a_o christian_n man_n that_o either_o these_o be_v not_o the_o first_o among_o his_o child_n or_o else_o that_o child_n be_v deny_v he_o so_o long_o as_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n neither_o be_v it_o meet_v to_o cleave_v unto_o fable_n so_o curious_o invent_v but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v as_o concern_v the_o great_a number_n of_o year_n wherein_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v live_v shall_v we_o be_v so_o hardy_a to_o affirm_v that_o those_o be_v not_o so_o long_o as_o these_o year_n of_o we_o but_o that_o they_o be_v of_o two_o or_o three_o month_n long_o and_o pliny_n seem_v to_o report_v in_o the_o 7._o book_n of_o his_o natural_a history_n that_o diverse_a country_n make_v their_o computation_n of_o year_n otherwise_o than_o we_o do_v and_o that_o thereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v live_v long_o than_o the_o common_a course_n this_o can_v possible_o be_v prove_v by_o this_o argument_n because_o in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o ark_n and_o of_o the_o flood_n 12._o gen._n 7_o 12._o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o second_o and_o ten_o month_n wherefore_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o year_n be_v then_o that_o be_v now_o addition_n gen._n 8_o 5._o a_o addition_n yea_o and_o by_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o history_n you_o may_v plain_o perceive_v that_o the_o full_a number_n of_o day_n and_o month_n which_o we_o use_v in_o our_o age_n or_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a within_o very_a few_o more_o or_o less_o be_v complete_v at_o that_o time_n for_o in_o the_o 17._o day_n of_o the_o second_o month_n at_o what_o time_n as_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o great_a deep_a do_v break_v up_o noah_n enter_v into_o the_o ark_n the_o 17._o day_n of_o the_o second_o month_n the_o ark_n rest_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o armenia_n in_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o ten_o month_n the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n be_v see_v then_o follow_v forty_o day_n before_o noah_n open_v the_o window_n of_o the_o ark_n whereunto_o add_v 14._o day_n more_o which_o be_v spend_v in_o send_v forth_o of_o the_o doove_n which_o be_v in_o all_o 54._o day_n or_o two_o month_n make_v up_o the_o full_a number_n of_o twelve_o month_n the_o very_a same_o reckon_n which_o we_o at_o this_o day_n observe_v so_o we_o have_v it_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o see_v as_o well_o the_o year_n as_o month_n of_o old_a time_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o we_o be_v or_o little_o differ_v the_o time_n of_o their_o life_n in_o those_o day_n be_v no_o les_fw-fr than_o the_o scripture_n declare_v ¶_o look_v the_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o gen._n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n of_o giant_n 10._o in_o jud._n 1._o verse_n 10._o 32_o now_o see_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v oftentimes_o of_o giant_n 4._o look_v in_o gen._n 6_o 4._o it_o shall_v not_o be_v unprofitable_a if_o we_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o they_o first_o we_o must_v understand_v hanak_n by_o how_o many_o name_n the_o giant_n be_v call_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o signify_v hanak_n that_o they_o be_v call_v by_o diverse_a name_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o rephaim_n nephilim_n emim_n and_o hanakim_n the_o hebrew_n verb_n hanak_n be_v to_o environ_v or_o compass_v about_o and_o from_o thence_o be_v derive_v the_o noun_n hanak_n and_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n it_o be_v both_o the_o masculine_a and_o feminine_a gender_n and_o signify_v a_o chain_n and_o it_o be_v transfer_v unto_o notable_a &_o famous_a man_n as_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v knight_n and_o chaineman_n but_o they_o be_v call_v emim_a by_o reason_n of_o a_o terror_n which_o they_o bring_v upon_o other_o with_o their_o look_n they_o be_v call_v zamzumim_a of_o wickedness_n for_o they_o have_v confidence_n in_o their_o own_o power_n and_o strength_n contemn_v both_o law_n justice_n and_o honesty_n and_o they_o always_o wrought_v wickedness_n for_o doubtless_o the_o hebrue_n word_n zimma_n signify_v wickedness_n or_o mischief_n also_o they_o be_v name_v rephaim_n because_o man_n meeting_n with_o they_o become_v in_o a_o manner_n astonish_v for_o that_o word_n otherwhile_o signify_v dead_a man_n final_o they_o be_v call_v nephilim_n as_o one_o may_v say_v oppressor_n of_o the_o verb_n naphal_a which_o be_v to_o fall_v or_o to_o rush_v upon_o because_o they_o do_v violent_o run_v upon_o all_o man_n some_o thought_n that_o they_o be_v sometime_o call_v gibborim_n but_o because_o we_o use_v to_o refer_v that_o word_n unto_o power_n and_o gibborim_n be_v proper_o call_v strong_a man_n therefore_o i_o will_v not_o put_v it_o among_o these_o further_o augustine_n what_o time_n giant_n begin_v to_o be_v augustine_n if_o thou_o will_v demand_v when_o giant_n begin_v to_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o augustine_n in_o the_o 16._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 23._o chapter_n we_o may_v say_v that_o they_o be_v before_o the_o flood_n wherein_o we_o believe_v he_o because_o he_o proove_v it_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o genesis_n 4._o gen._n 6_o 4._o that_o in_o those_o day_n there_o be_v giant_n upon_o the_o earth_n who_o stock_n although_o it_o be_v preserve_v after_o the_o flood_n yet_o he_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o great_a number_n 33_o beside_o this_o man_n whether_o giant_n be_v beget_v by_o man_n there_o be_v a_o doubt_n as_o touch_v procreation_n and_o parent_n for_o some_o think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o beget_v of_o man_n but_o that_o angel_n or_o spirit_n be_v their_o parent_n and_o this_o they_o say_v be_v special_o confirm_v by_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n 1._o gen._n 6_o 1._o the_o son_n of_o god_n see_v the_o daughter_n of_o man_n that_o they_o be_v fair_a take_v they_o to_o wife_n and_o of_o they_o be_v bear_v most_o mighty_a man_n or_o giant_n of_o this_o fall_n of_o angel_n because_o they_o be_v conversant_a with_o woman_n many_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n lactantius_n in_o the_o second_o book_n the_o 15._o chapter_n lactantius_n lactantius_n for_o as_o we_o read_v there_o he_o think_v that_o god_n fear_v lest_o that_o sathan_n to_o who_o he_o have_v grant_v dominion_n of_o the_o world_n will_v utterlie_o have_v destroy_v mankind_n and_o therefore_o he_o give_v unto_o mankind_n angel_n for_o tutor_n by_o who_o industry_n and_o care_n they_o may_v be_v defend_v but_o they_o be_v as_o well_o provoke_v by_o the_o craft_n of_o sathan_n as_o allure_v by_o the_o beauty_n of_o fair_a woman_n commit_v uncleanness_n with_o they_o wherefore_o he_o say_v that_o both_o they_o be_v cast_v from_o their_o dignity_n and_o be_v make_v soldier_n of_o the_o devil_n this_o indeed_o do_v lactantius_n think_v yet_o he_o say_v not_o that_o through_o those_o meeting_n of_o the_o angel_n with_o woman_n be_v bear_v giant_n but_o earthly_a daemon_n or_o spirit_n which_o walk_v about_o the_o earth_n to_o our_o great_a harm_n caesariensis_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n in_o his_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr praeparatione_fw-la evangelica_fw-la be_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n for_o he_o say_v also_o that_o the_o angel_n which_o fall_v beget_v of_o woman_n who_o they_o lewdlie_o love_v those_o daemon_n or_o spirit_n which_o afterward_o in_o sundry_a wise_n bring_v great_a trouble_n to_o the_o world_n and_o to_o the_o very_a same_o sort_n he_o refer_v all_o those_o which_o the_o poet_n and_o historiographer_n teach_v to_o be_v god_n &_o who_o battle_n contention_n lust_n sundry_a and_o great_a tumult_n they_o have_v mention_v either_o in_o verse_n or_o in_o prose_n augustine_n augustine_n but_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 15._o book_n and_o 23._o chapter_n think_v not_o that_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o ancient_a father_n can_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o genesis_n for_o he_o say_v that_o such_o as_o be_v there_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v very_a man_n god_n man_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o seth_n be_v
motion_n of_o the_o mind_n unto_o thing_n forbid_v wicked_a deliberation_n naughty_a endeavour_n &_o corrupt_a custom_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o sin_n comprehend_v both_o the_o root_n itself_o and_o also_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o same_o neither_o must_v they_o be_v hearken_v unto_o which_o babble_n that_o these_o thing_n be_v no_o sin_n for_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v they_o by_o this_o name_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o also_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o speak_v and_o stand_v unto_o his_o doctrine_n and_o moreover_o the_o ●erie_a etymology_n of_o the_o word_n itself_o do_v show_v sin_n the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n sin_n that_o the_o first_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n be_v sin_n for_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v sin_n come_v of_o this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v to_o err_v from_o the_o right_a scope_n appoint_v by_o what_o mean_v soever_o the_o same_o come_v to_o pass_v nature_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o see_v it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o of_o all_o our_o action_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o conformable_a to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n sure_o we_o be_v then_o prone_a unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v forbid_v we_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o even_o at_o the_o first_o push_n be_v carry_v straight_o headlong_o unto_o they_o without_o all_o controversy_n we_o must_v be_v say_v to_o sin_n that_o be_v to_o err_v from_o the_o scope_n and_o from_o the_o end_n appoint_v unto_o us._n the_o like_a signification_n there_o be_v of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n for_o that_o which_o be_v in_o that_o tongue_n call_v chataa_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o word_n chata_n which_o thou_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n 16._o verse_n 16._o the_o 20._o chapter_n use_v in_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n wherein_o i_o declare_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v take_v that_o be_v to_o miss_v the_o mark_n for_o it_o be_v there_o write_v of_o the_o seven_o hundred_o child_n of_o benjamin_n that_o they_o be_v wont_v so_o to_o throw_v stone_n out_o of_o a_o sling_n as_o they_o can_v hit_v even_o a_o hair_n and_o will_v not_o miss_v one_o whit_n beside_o this_o experience_n itself_o teach_v how_o gréevous_a these_o evil_n be_v even_o in_o we_o which_o be_v regenerate_v for_o we_o be_v so_o hinder_v by_o they_o as_o we_o can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o observe_v in_o every_o point_n 17_o exod._n 12_o 17_o we_o be_v also_o command_v not_o to_o lust_n to_o the_o which_o precept_n every_o one_o give_v his_o secret_a consent_n and_o be_v witness_n to_o himself_o how_o much_o he_o do_v withstand_v by_o reason_n of_o our_o pronesse_n unto_o sin_n and_o first_o motion_n unto_o vice_n regenerate_v in_o what_o sort_n the_o law_n be_v fulfil_v in_o man_n regenerate_v but_o if_o the_o father_n do_v seem_v to_o write_v sometime_o that_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v by_o man_n regenerate_v in_o christ_n they_o speak_v of_o a_o obedience_n begin_v and_o of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o fulfil_v as_o have_v much_o imperfection_n join_v therewith_o for_o they_o pronounce_v they_o to_o be_v perfect_a 12._o they_o be_v perfect_a which_o perceive_v their_o own_o imperfection_n matt._n 6_o 12._o and_o to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o can_v perceive_v their_o own_o imperfection_n that_o they_o may_v daily_o say_v with_o other_o lord_n forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n and_o acknowledge_v with_o paul_n that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a way_n further_o to_o go_v also_o the_o same_o father_n do_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v find_v none_o no_o not_o the_o holy_a virtue_n the_o most_o godly_a man_n have_v not_o perform_v all_o virtue_n that_o have_v most_o perfect_o love_v all_o virtue_n for_o as_o jerom_n say_v he_o that_o excel_v other_o in_o one_o virtue_n do_v oftentimes_o fail_v in_o another_o and_o he_o cit_v cicero_n who_o say_v that_o there_o can_v easy_o be_v find_v one_o which_o be_v most_o excellent_a either_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n or_o in_o the_o art_n of_o rhethorike_n but_o to_o find_v one_o that_o excel_v in_o both_o kind_n together_o it_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o wherefore_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v make_v famous_a and_o renown_a the_o entire_a benefit_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n bestow_v upon_o we_o he_o not_o only_o touch_v original_a sin_n but_o also_o comprehend_v under_o one_o name_n of_o sin_n all_o kind_n of_o vice_n which_o do_v flow_v from_o thence_o enter_v by_o adam_n as_o by_o the_o common_a root_n and_o mass_n sin_n enter_v 46_o now_o we_o must_v see_v by_o which_o one_o man_n it_o be_v that_o paul_n say_v sin_n have_v such_o a_o entrance_n into_o the_o world_n the_o same_o undoubted_o be_v the_o first_o adam_n who_o be_v as_o a_o certain_a common_a lump_n or_o mass_n wherein_o be_v contain_v all_o mankind_n which_o lump_n be_v corrupt_v we_o can_v be_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n but_o corrupt_v and_o defile_v eue._n the_o fault_n be_v ascribe_v to_o adam_n not_o to_o eue._n and_o although_o eve_n transgress_v before_o the_o man_n yet_o be_v the_o original_n of_o sin_v ascribe_v unto_o adam_n because_o the_o succession_n be_v account_v in_o man_n and_o not_o in_o woman_n howbeit_o ambrose_n by_o one_o man_n understand_v it_o to_o be_v eue._n but_o see_v that_o word_n one_o in_o that_o place_n be_v the_o masculine_a gender_n the_o signification_n thereof_o can_v but_o hardly_o and_o with_o much_o wrestle_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o woman_n other_o do_v think_v that_o under_o the_o common_a name_n of_o man_n both_o of_o they_o as_o well_o adam_n as_o eve_n be_v understand_v so_o that_o this_o speech_n may_v not_o differ_v much_o from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n male_a and_o female_a create_v he_o they_o 27._o gen_n 2_o 27._o neither_o do_v they_o much_o regard_v this_o adiective_n 24._o gen._n 2_o 24._o one_o because_o the_o scripture_n testify_v that_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v all_o one_o flesh_n the_o first_o interpretation_n be_v the_o more_o sincere_a and_o easy_a therefore_o i_o willing_o follow_v the_o same_o but_o we_o must_v remember_v what_o paul_n write_v unto_o timothy_n 14._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 14._o that_o although_o both_o those_o two_o first_o parent_n sin_v yet_o there_o be_v not_o one_o manner_n of_o transgression_n in_o they_o both_o deceive_v paul_n say_v that_o adam_n be_v not_o deceive_v for_o he_o say_v that_o adam_n be_v not_o deceive_v which_o be_v gather_v by_o that_o which_o they_o answer_v god_n when_o he_o reproove_v they_o for_o the_o woman_n be_v ask_v wherefore_o she_o do_v it_o she_o accuse_v the_o serpent_n 13._o gen._n 3_o 13._o the_o serpent_n say_v she_o deceive_v i_o but_o adam_n when_o he_o be_v demand_v the_o same_o question_n say_v not_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v but_o he_o say_v the_o woman_n 12._o gen._n 3_o 12._o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o deliver_v i_o a_o apple_n and_o i_o do_v eat_v these_o thing_n must_v not_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o we_o affirm_v that_o no_o error_n do_v happen_v unto_o man_n when_o he_o transgress_v transgress_v a_o error_n be_v in_o adam_n that_o transgress_v for_o as_o it_o be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o ethic_n in_o every_o kind_n of_o sin_n there_o always_o happen_v some_o error_n this_o only_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o man_n be_v not_o seduce_v by_o so_o gross_a a_o guile_n as_o the_o woman_n be_v and_o this_o do_v very_o much_o further_a paul_n reason_n for_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o will_v the_o woman_n to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n because_o she_o be_v a_o instrument_n fit_a to_o deceive_v and_o this_o he_o confirm_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o first_o parent_n for_o she_o that_o persuade_v man_n to_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o she_o can_v right_o instruct_v he_o and_o she_o that_o can_v be_v seduce_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o deceive_v by_o the_o serpent_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o she_o to_o bear_v office_n in_o the_o church_n woman_n eccle._n 25_o 33_o say_v that_o sin_n begin_v at_o the_o woman_n yet_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la say_v that_o sin_n have_v his_o first_o beginning_n from_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o history_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n but_o paul_n as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v do_v keep_v the_o usual_a manner_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o ascribe_v succession_n and_o procreation_n unto_o man_n and_o not_o unto_o woman_n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o teach_v at_o that_o
and_o this_o if_o our_o magistrate_n and_o bishop_n do_v not_o look_v unto_o they_o can_v escape_v a_o just_a accusation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o grant_v unto_o the_o turk_n any_o religious_a assembly_n for_o that_o they_o have_v not_o any_o particular_a promise_n of_o their_o salvation_n neither_o will_v they_o read_v there_o either_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o the_o new_a but_o only_o their_o most_o detestable_a alcoran_n over_o this_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v prohibit_v to_o exercise_v false_a bargain_v and_o usury_n among_o christian_n thereby_o to_o vex_v and_o afflict_v the_o poor_a christian_n before_o our_o face_n the_o which_o can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a indignity_n but_o our_o prince_n exact_v a_o good_a great_a tribute_n of_o they_o and_o of_o those_o gain_n which_o come_v by_o usury_n and_o naughty_a bargain_v they_o obtain_v great_a prey_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o forbid_v they_o these_o evil_a art_n furthermore_o a_o thing_n no_o less_o hurtful_a they_o provide_v not_o to_o have_v they_o teach_v when_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o compel_v they_o to_o come_v often_o to_o godly_a christian_n sermon_n otherwise_o while_o they_o be_v so_o negligent_o leave_v they_o become_v daily_o worse_o and_o worse_o whereby_o either_o naughty_a fruit_n or_o in_o a_o manner_n none_o at_o all_o can_v be_v look_v for_o by_o the_o conversation_n which_o they_o have_v among_o christian_n it_o must_v also_o be_v look_v diligent_o to_o that_o they_o corrupt_v not_o christian_n in_o seduce_v they_o to_o their_o jewish_a religion_n marran_n the_o heresy_n of_o the_o marran_n by_o reason_n of_o neglect_v hereof_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o marrans_n have_v much_o increase_v special_o in_o spain_n moreover_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o may_v by_o some_o apparel_n or_o certain_a token_n be_v know_v from_o christian_n lest_o any_o unwittinglie_o shall_v be_v familiar_a with_o they_o no_o less_o than_o with_o the_o christian_n and_o these_o thing_n shall_v suffice_v concern_v this_o sort_n of_o infidel_n of_o heresy_n heresy_n what_o be_v heresy_n 50_o now_o let_v we_o speak_v of_o heretic_n the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v derive_v of_o this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v to_o elect_v or_o choose_v for_o those_o kind_n of_o man_n choose_v unto_o themselves_o some_o certain_a opinion_n which_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o do_v stubbornelie_o defend_v the_o same_o heresy_n the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n but_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o their_o choice_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v either_o for_o that_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o if_o they_o know_v they_o they_o despise_v they_o and_o be_v drive_v of_o a_o certain_a desire_n they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o invention_n of_o some_o error_n augustine_n augustine_n wherefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la write_v a_o heretic_n be_v he_o which_o for_o the_o love_n of_o gain_n or_o bear_v of_o rule_n either_o breed_v or_o else_o follow_v new_a opinion_n so_o that_o the_o definition_n of_o heresy_n be_v a_o choice_n heresy_n a_o definition_n of_o heresy_n and_o stubborn_a defend_n of_o opinion_n which_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n proceed_v through_o the_o ignorance_n or_o contempt_n of_o they_o that_o they_o may_v the_o easy_o obtain_v their_o pleasure_n and_o commodity_n choice_n and_o stubborn_a defend_n in_o this_o definition_n be_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o form_n but_o the_o opinion_n disagrée_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n serve_v for_o the_o matter_n pride_n and_o covetousness_n make_v heresy_n and_o the_o obtain_n of_o dignity_n gain_n and_o pleasure_n be_v appoint_v as_o end_n of_o so_o great_a a_o mischief_n by_o this_o definition_n be_v manifest_a enough_o as_o i_o think_v who_o be_v heretic_n i_o mean_v not_o now_o to_o descend_v unto_o the_o kind_n and_o particular_n of_o heresy_n i_o hope_v i_o shall_v have_v a_o other_o occasion_n and_o place_n more_o convenient_a this_o will_v i_o brief_o say_v as_o concern_v this_o question_n that_o we_o be_v to_o deal_v with_o heretic_n in_o none_o otherwise_o than_o with_o infidel_n and_o jew_n 51_o but_o to_o draw_v to_o a_o end_n of_o these_o thing_n augustine_n in_o 1._o cor._n 10_o at_o the_o end_n augustine_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v let_v we_o hear_v what_o augustine_n write_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o his_o 154._o epistle_n unto_o publicola_n where_o he_o say_v idolatry_n question_n of_o thing_n suspect_v touch_v idolatry_n if_o so_o be_v a_o idolater_n shall_v offer_v unto_o idol_n any_o portion_n of_o the_o fruit_n or_o of_o the_o wine_n late_o strain_v in_o the_o press_n that_o make_v not_o but_o we_o may_v free_o use_v that_o which_o remain_v as_o well_o in_o the_o press_n as_o in_o the_o barn_n for_o we_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o draw_v water_n out_o of_o those_o fountain_n and_o well_n from_o whence_o they_o take_v for_o the_o service_n of_o their_o idol_n but_o he_o judge_v that_o he_o which_o have_v the_o public_a power_n the_o magistrate_n i_o mean_v by_o his_o authority_n must_v withstand_v that_o no_o part_n of_o the_o profit_n shall_v be_v defalk_v and_o employ_v to_o wicked_a worshipping_n but_o if_o this_o can_v not_o be_v hinder_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v remain_v he_o make_v free_a he_o answer_v also_o touch_v the_o common_a banns_n wherein_o idolater_n be_v wont_v to_o bathe_v themselves_o the_o which_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o make_v common_a unto_o christian_n for_o say_v he_o we_o likewise_o take_v breath_n and_o breath_n out_o air_n which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o evil_a stink_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o infidel_n hereunto_o i_o will_v willing_o also_o add_v that_o albeit_o i_o confess_v the_o place_n of_o the_o bath_n for_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v free_a also_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o beléever_n yet_o that_o we_o must_v not_o wash_v together_o with_o unbeléever_n because_o in_o that_o kind_n of_o action_n there_o may_v be_v note_v some_o familiarity_n assent_n and_o participation_n together_o heretic_n john_n will_v not_o wash_v with_o cerynthus_fw-la the_o heretic_n and_o this_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o john_n the_o evangelist_n do_v avoid_v who_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o a_o bane_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o cerynthus_fw-la the_o heretic_n do_v wash_v therein_o 52_o augustine_n add_v augustine_n augustine_n that_o we_o must_v use_v nothing_o that_o we_o understand_v do_v tend_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o worship_v of_o idol_n neither_o do_v it_o avail_n say_v he_o if_o thou_o say_v that_o thy_o conscience_n be_v clear_a for_o thy_o neighbour_n do_v not_o see_v into_o thy_o hart_n but_o behold_v thy_o fact_n therefore_o if_o we_o shall_v hear_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v either_o superstitious_a or_o idolatrous_a we_o must_v abhor_v and_o detest_v it_o and_o not_o convert_v it_o to_o our_o own_o use_n the_o which_o be_v expresselie_o command_v in_o deuteronomie_n 25._o deut._n 7_o 25._o when_o god_n forbid_v man_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v such_o thing_n unto_o themselves_o of_o which_o opinion_n augustine_n allege_v two_o reason_n lest_o thou_o take_v any_o thing_n away_o which_o serve_v to_o the_o superstitious_a worship_v they_o suspect_v that_o thou_o be_v move_v to_o abolish_v wicked_a worship_v not_o for_o religion_n but_o for_o covetousness_n sake_n namely_o that_o thou_o may_v wax_v rich_a and_o to_o fulfil_v thy_o covetousness_n another_o reason_n there_o be_v that_o if_o thou_o shall_v lay_v up_o at_o home_n these_o thing_n among_o thy_o treasure_n it_o may_v easy_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o either_o they_o shall_v be_v have_v in_o honour_n of_o thy_o posterity_n or_o of_o the_o unwise_a sort_n which_o be_v in_o thy_o household_n and_o so_o that_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_v by_o little_a and_o little_o shall_v be_v restore_v howbeit_o he_o confess_v use_n godly_a emperor_n have_v apply_v such_o thing_n to_o godly_a use_n that_o those_o superstitious_a thing_n may_v be_v convert_v into_o public_a use_n and_o to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o true_a and_o right_a religion_n even_o as_o we_o have_v know_v godly_a emperor_n to_o have_v do_v who_o have_v take_v money_n give_v to_o the_o theatre_n and_o to_o the_o temple_n of_o idol_n and_o have_v consecrate_v they_o to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o good_a use_n of_o the_o commonweal_n 26._o verse_n 26._o and_o there_o be_v a_o place_n cite_v out_o of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n where_o the_o lord_n will_v the_o wood_n of_o the_o grove_n dedicate_v to_o baal_n the_o which_o gedeon_n do_v cut_v down_o to_o be_v transfer_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o be_v to_o offer_v and_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o josua_n we_o read_v 24._o
lest_o forsooth_o it_o shall_v be_v tread_v under_o foot_n or_o spit_v upon_o but_o petrus_n crinitus_n say_v that_o he_o see_v that_o law_n write_v absolute_o whereby_o be_v command_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v of_o any_o matter_n but_o that_o he_o can_v be_v counterfeit_v as_o touch_v his_o humane_a nature_n there_o be_v no_o firm_a reason_n bring_v 11_o the_o angel_n as_o touch_v their_o substance_n and_o nature_n see_v they_o be_v spirit_n can_v be_v express_v yet_o be_v it_o lawful_a sometime_o to_o picture_n they_o in_o such_o wise_a as_o they_o have_v show_v themselves_o unto_o man_n for_o they_o be_v not_o as_o god_n be_v infinite_a but_o be_v bound_v and_o limit_v neither_o do_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n forbid_v this_o unless_o their_o picture_n be_v make_v to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v be_v religious_o and_o devout_o worship_v picture_v that_o man_n may_v be_v picture_v also_o man_n may_v be_v picture_v and_o counterfeit_v see_v the_o same_o be_v not_o repugnant_a either_o to_o the_o thing_n either_o to_o art_n or_o else_o to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n so_o be_v it_o lawful_a also_o to_o form_n and_o picture_n forth_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n the_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n tree_n fruit_n and_o other_o sensible_a or_o visible_a body_n for_o the_o art_n of_o paint_v and_o counterfeit_v be_v the_o very_a gift_n of_o god_n wherefore_o they_o must_v serve_v to_o some_o use_n and_o by_o this_o i_o gather_v that_o they_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n because_o he_o endue_v the_o builder_n of_o moses_n tabernacle_n with_o his_o spirit_n bezeleel_n i_o mean_v and_o aholiba_n 6._o exod._n 31_o 2_o and_o 6._o neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v inspire_v evil_a thing_n with_o his_o spirit_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v against_o his_o law_n moreover_o the_o power_n itself_o of_o imitate_v see_v it_o be_v natural_a unto_o man_n very_o he_o have_v the_o same_o of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o himself_o and_o it_o follow_v of_o right_a that_o some_o use_n shall_v be_v thereof_o because_o god_n have_v bestow_v no_o gift_n upon_o his_o creature_n especial_o upon_o man_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o sometime_o to_o use_v neither_o do_v he_o take_v away_o the_o use_n of_o those_o gift_n because_o many_o do_v abuse_v they_o and_o this_o be_v easy_o confirm_v by_o many_o similitude_n the_o power_n of_o procreation_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n although_o some_o do_v shameful_o abuse_v the_o same_o unto_o lust_n so_o the_o sight_n be_v grant_v which_o they_o do_v perverselie_o use_v who_o for_o lust_n sake_n do_v behold_v woman_n which_o be_v none_o of_o their_o own_o and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o rest_n again_o we_o know_v that_o solomon_n will_v have_v image_n to_o be_v make_v for_o his_o royal_a throne_n 19_o 1._o kin._n 10_o 19_o which_o shall_v have_v the_o form_n of_o young_a lion_n neither_o be_v he_o for_o that_o matter_n reprehend_v by_o any_o prophet_n wherefore_o in_o a_o profane_a thing_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o have_v picture_n and_o grave_a image_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o special_o clement_n and_o tertullian_n detest_v the_o act_n of_o painter_n and_o image-maker_n but_o i_o understand_v this_o in_o respect_n that_o these_o workman_n do_v profess_v christ_n and_o yet_o they_o make_v image_n &_o picture_n which_o may_v easy_o be_v worship_v and_o peradventure_o they_o divide_v they_o among_o the_o idolater_n think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o their_o own_o salvation_n if_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o worship_v they_o image_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o turk_n touch_v image_n but_o the_o turk_n be_v of_o the_o opinion_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o image_n make_v at_o all_o whereupon_o in_o their_o coin_n they_o only_o have_v letter_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o arabian_a tongue_n and_o upon_o their_o tapestry_n they_o also_o use_v to_o weave_v certain_a knot_n the_o use_n of_o image_n may_v be_v good_a for_o the_o keep_v of_o thing_n in_o memory_n for_o the_o garnish_n of_o house_n especial_o of_o king_n and_o noble_a personage_n and_o also_o to_o serve_v for_o some_o honest_a pleasure_n wherewith_o man_n sometime_o may_v both_o delight_n and_o recreate_v themselves_o howbeit_o in_o such_o light_a commodity_n there_o be_v oftentimes_o many_o fault_n for_o false_a image_n be_v sundry_a time_n thrust_v in_o in_o steed_n of_o true_a as_o if_o so_o be_v a_o nation_n or_o people_n be_v describe_v to_o be_v overcome_v by_o their_o enemy_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v the_o vanquisher_n that_o must_v needs_o be_v reproove_v see_v it_o do_v injury_n unto_o other_o also_o if_o one_o be_v picture_v to_o have_v do_v some_o heinous_a act_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o do_v not_o neither_o must_v they_o be_v bear_v with_o which_o do_v paint_v false_a miracle_n whereby_o idolatry_n may_v win_v credit_n and_o doubtless_o in_o our_o time_n there_o have_v not_o want_v such_o as_o have_v endeavour_v to_o paint_v the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n infancy_n which_o thing_n be_v no_o where_n find_v write_v and_o seem_v to_o be_v altogether_o fabulous_a so_o some_o likewise_o do_v paint_v out_o in_o many_o place_n christopher_z and_o george_n rather_o monstruouslie_o than_o true_o we_o must_v therefore_o take_v heed_n least_o man_n be_v perniciouslie_o seduce_v by_o false_a image_n i_o have_v add_v perniciouslie_o because_o the_o gentaure_n &_o other_o thing_n of_o like_a sort_n may_v for_o garnish_v sake_n be_v express_v without_o any_o harm_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v beholder_n other_o attempt_v to_o paint_v out_o virtue_n which_o have_v no_o body_n virtue_n image_n of_o virtue_n but_o do_v belong_v unto_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v a_o spirit_n also_o they_o paint_a or_o fashion_v they_o like_a to_o virgin_n and_o matron_n and_o therein_o i_o think_v be_v no_o deceit_n whereby_o the_o beholder_n can_v be_v deceive_v howbeit_o this_o seem_v the_o safe_a way_n of_o all_o other_o that_o if_o thing_n shall_v be_v paint_v the_o profitable_a and_o holy_a history_n shall_v chéeflie_o be_v paint_v whereby_o the_o beholder_n may_v receive_v some_o edifieng_v further_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o lavish_v out_o of_o money_n for_o there_o be_v some_o which_o in_o procure_v of_o picture_n and_o image_n be_v stark_o mad_a these_o cost_n must_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o poor_a how_o great_o herein_o it_o have_v be_v offend_v image_n a_o superstitious_a use_n of_o image_n the_o temple_n from_o our_o forefather_n which_o be_v yet_o extant_a do_v evident_o declare_v beside_o this_o we_o must_v take_v very_o diligent_a heed_n that_o there_o be_v no_o filthy_a thing_n paint_v picturing_n against_o shameful_a picturing_n for_o we_o be_v otherwise_o of_o our_o own_o vileness_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n sufficient_o kindle_v unto_o lust_n if_o it_o be_v true_o say_v 33_o 1._o co._n 15_o 33_o that_o evil_a speak_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n no_o less_o do_v filthy_a image_n corrupt_v the_o beholder_n tertullian_n write_v apologetico_fw-la tertullian_n in_o his_o apologetico_fw-la that_o the_o ethnik_v paint_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n with_o ass_n ear_n in_o despite_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n wherefore_o such_o a_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v account_v blasphemous_a last_o from_o they_o must_v be_v remoove_v all_o religious_a worship_n the_o which_o that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v they_o it_o must_v be_v always_o provide_v that_o they_o be_v not_o place_v in_o the_o church_n 12_o see_v therefore_o it_o be_v now_o declare_v what_o thing_n it_o be_v lawful_a to_o picture_n after_o this_o we_o must_v diligent_o examine_v whether_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o use_v any_o adoration_n or_o worship_v in_o image_n in_o the_o disputation_n whereof_o we_o will_v first_o recite_v what_o our_o adversary_n have_v think_v be_v what_o a_o holy_a worship_v be_v &_o what_o kind_n of_o worship_n shall_v be_v speak_v of_o holy_a worship_v the_o greek_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o latin_n pietas_n serve_v look_v in_o rom._n 1._o upon_o these_o word_n who_o i_o serve_v that_o be_v godliness_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v extend_v both_o unto_o the_o parent_n and_o unto_o the_o country_n but_o we_o now_o talk_v only_o of_o religious_a worship_v &_o inquire_v whether_o the_o same_o may_v be_v attribute_v unto_o image_n divine_a worship_n or_o honour_n be_v express_v of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o two_o word_n worship_n a_o distinction_n of_o divine_a worship_n of_o the_o verb_n jare_v which_o be_v to_o fear_v and_o auad_n which_o be_v to_o serve_v and_o undoubted_o under_o the_o name_n of_o fear_n be_v comprehend_v all_o religion_n which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o mind_n by_o auad_n be_v declare_v a_o
outward_a service_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o ceremony_n beside_o a_o inward_a worship_v wherefore_o it_o be_v right_o say_v 13._o deut._n 6_o 13._o fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o moreover_o christ_n do_v fight_v with_o this_o place_n against_o the_o devil_n say_v 10_o matth._n 4_o 10_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o thou_o shall_v serve_v whereupon_o augustine_n devise_v a_o difference_n between_o religious_a worshipping_n call_v that_o which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a to_o do_v unto_o creature_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o 49._o epistle_n ad_fw-la deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la and_o against_o faustus_n the_o 20._o book_n and_o 21._o chapter_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o service_n which_o be_v only_o do_v unto_o the_o godhead_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o same_o can_v in_o one_o word_n be_v express_v of_o the_o latin_n also_o in_o the_o 20._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o first_o chapter_n he_o write_v very_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n sure_o for_o my_o part_n i_o have_v not_o read_v of_o any_o such_o distinction_n in_o the_o father_n before_o augustine_n time_n and_o certeinlie_o laurentius_n valla_n upon_o matthew_n the_o 4._o chapter_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n as_o concern_v the_o word_n because_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v as_o well_o to_o serve_v god_n as_o man_n and_o he_o allege_v a_o place_n out_o of_o xenophon_n where_o a_o husband_n say_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a with_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v his_o life_n to_o redeem_v that_o his_o wife_n shall_v not_o serve_v any_o man_n in_o which_o place_n he_o use_v the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o the_o wife_n say_v that_o she_o will_v redeem_v with_o her_o life_n that_o her_o husband_n may_v not_o serve_v where_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v and_o suidas_n say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o serve_v for_o reward_n and_o undoubted_o according_a to_o this_o sense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o where_o it_o be_v command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o servile_a work_n do_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o greek_n signify_v a_o handmaid_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o manseruant_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o reward_n whereupon_o in_o time_n past_a latrones_fw-la be_v call_v mercenary_a soldier_n who_o some_o i_o know_v not_o how_o well_o have_v think_v so_o to_o be_v call_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v laterones_n as_o they_o that_o shall_v guard_v the_o person_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o luke_n it_o be_v write_v you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n 13._o luk._n 16_o 13._o where_o for_o serve_v the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v as_o common_a unto_o both_o the_o service_n paul_n also_o call_v himself_o in_o many_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d christi_fw-la 1._o rom._n 1_o 1._o phil._n 1_o 1._o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o act_n he_o say_v that_o he_o continue_v among_o the_o ephesian_n 19_o acts._n 20_o 19_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d serve_v god._n and_o unto_o the_o colossian_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 24._o col._n 3_o 24._o serve_v god_n but_o augustine_n himself_o seem_v not_o constant_o to_o have_v retain_v that_o difference_n for_o in_o the_o 94._o question_n upon_o exodus_fw-la he_o handle_v these_o word_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n if_o thou_o serve_v other_o god_n they_o will_v make_v thou_o fall_v to_o sin_n in_o this_o place_n say_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 33._o verse_n 33._o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v due_a unto_o god_n himself_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v our_o god_n 13_o but_o pass_v over_o the_o word_n god_n one_o manner_n of_o honour_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n and_o another_o unto_o god_n let_v we_o rather_o deal_v with_o the_o matter_n itself_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o honour_n which_o we_o attribute_v unto_o god_n be_v not_o that_o which_o we_o give_v unto_o man_n for_o that_o be_v the_o high_a honour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o one_o only_a god_n and_o it_o chéeflie_o consist_v in_o these_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o repose_v in_o he_o all_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o we_o account_v he_o for_o our_o chief_a happiness_n by_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o without_o add_v of_o any_o condition_n but_o even_o simple_o and_o absolute_o but_o unto_o prince_n we_o must_v submit_v ourselves_o and_o all_o that_o be_v we_o yet_o so_o as_o they_o command_v we_o not_o to_o do_v thing_n repugnant_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o unto_o god_n we_o be_v subject_a without_o any_o manner_n of_o condition_n or_o exception_n furthermore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o simple_o and_o absolute_o and_o that_o we_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v as_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n in_o give_v he_o thanks_o for_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o daily_o do_v happen_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o must_v declare_v his_o honour_n by_o outward_a call_n upon_o he_o also_o some_o honour_n be_v due_a unto_o the_o excellent_a creature_n such_o as_o be_v prince_n prophet_n and_o godly_a man_n wherefore_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 22._o book_n and_o 10._o chapter_n write_v that_o those_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v in_o the_o right_n of_o charity_n and_o society_n for_o we_o hold_v they_o for_o our_o fellow_n and_o brethren_n and_o therefore_o we_o love_v they_o we_o wish_v well_o unto_o they_o and_o we_o joy_n with_o they_o in_o their_o good_a hap_n moreover_o in_o his_o book_n of_o true_a religion_n 25._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o we_o must_v honour_v excellent_a man_n in_o respect_n of_o imitation_n by_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o their_o good_a life_n when_o as_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n they_o must_v not_o be_v worship_v and_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o honour_n paul_n write_v say_v in_o give_v honour_n go_v one_o before_o another_o 10_o rom._n 12._o 10_o again_o as_o brethren_n they_o be_v to_o be_v holpen_v with_o mutual_a good_a turn_n further_o in_o the_o church_n the_o saint_n be_v only_o commend_v and_o the_o noble_a gift_n which_o god_n bestow_v upon_o they_o be_v celebrate_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n 1._o luke_n 16_o 1._o as_o christ_n allow_v of_o the_o faithful_a and_o diligent_a servant_n which_o right_o and_o prudentlie_o behave_v himself_o in_o order_v of_o the_o money_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v but_o and_o if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o kind_n of_o worship_v we_o will_v that_o they_o may_v retain_v it_o so_o that_o they_o know_v the_o same_o distinction_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o have_v invent_v also_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a creature_n namely_o unto_o marie_n and_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n a_o difference_n of_o honour_n we_o disallow_v not_o but_o those_o thing_n which_o apperteine_a only_a to_o the_o high_a god_n we_o can_v not_o suffer_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o creature_n which_o thing_n out_o of_o doubt_n they_o do_v for_o they_o prostrate_v themselves_o before_o image_n they_o light_a wax_n candle_n to_o they_o and_o at_o they_o they_o invocate_v those_o dead_a man_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o augustine_n in_o many_o place_n take_v away_o from_o all_o creature_n church_n priesthood_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n but_o that_o prayer_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_n no_o man_n doubt_v yet_o the_o papist_n have_v communicate_v all_o these_o thing_n not_o only_o unto_o man_n depart_v this_o life_n but_o also_o unto_o image_n and_o picture_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o do_n they_o use_v many_o sophistication_n when_o as_o god_n notwithstanding_o plain_o speak_v and_o forbid_v that_o image_n shall_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v make_v unto_o religious_a worship_v and_o that_o which_o he_o have_v absolute_o speak_v and_o command_v must_v not_o be_v cunning_o shift_v off_o by_o man_n craftiness_n 14_o but_o it_o be_v good_a to_o
it_o will_v never_o amend_v thou_o howbeit_o we_o grant_v that_o image_n may_v have_v a_o good_a use_n namely_o to_o renew_v the_o memory_n of_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v do_v image_n how_o the_o memory_n of_o thing_n do_v to_o renew_v by_o image_n which_o thing_n although_o not_o every_o where_n yet_o in_o some_o place_n it_o happen_v convenientlie_o even_o as_o sometime_o we_o speak_v some_o thing_n by_o sign_n and_o dumb_a man_n express_v many_o thing_n by_o gesture_n but_o whereas_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v this_o at_o sometime_o and_o somewhere_o do_v we_o therefore_o use_v it_o always_o and_o in_o all_o place_n shall_v he_o be_v account_v a_o wise_a senator_n that_o in_o the_o senate_n house_n show_v his_o judgement_n by_o point_v and_o nod_v and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o we_o use_v water_n for_o the_o quench_n of_o thirst_n yet_o if_o thou_o set_v the_o same_o before_o thy_o guest_n at_o a_o banquet_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o fool_n and_o a_o covetous_a man_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n image_n although_o elsewhere_o they_o have_v their_o commodity_n yet_o they_o must_v not_o be_v suffer_v in_o church_n where_o we_o may_v deal_v with_o god_n by_o far_o better_a way_n &_o mean_n especial_o see_v they_o can_v not_o there_o be_v have_v without_o danger_n 14._o verse_n 14._o for_o jeremie_n in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n say_v that_o image_n do_v tell_v lie_n and_o even_o this_o do_v abacuk_n show_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o 13._o and_o 14._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n it_o be_v write_v chapter_n in_o the_o whole_a chapter_n that_o man_n be_v deceive_v by_o they_o and_o that_o the_o matter_n may_v appear_v more_o evident_a we_o must_v understand_v that_o then_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n a_o frequent_a use_n of_o image_n when_o as_o bishop_n begin_v to_o give_v themselves_o to_o idleness_n when_o they_o cease_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o feed_v the_o same_o with_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n then_o i_o say_v they_o do_v substitute_n image_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v vicegerent_n i_o beseech_v you_o let_v experience_n teach_v we_o and_o let_v we_o see_v since_o that_o time_n wherein_o temple_n be_v defile_v with_o image_n whether_o the_o rude_a and_o unlearned_a sort_n have_v be_v make_v the_o better_a learned_a by_o the_o use_n of_o they_o and_o have_v become_v the_o more_o skilful_a in_o divine_a thing_n by_o the_o use_n of_o they_o sure_o christ_n and_o god_n be_v much_o less_o know_v than_o before_o be_v god_n ignorant_a of_o this_o commodity_n of_o image_n 29_o assure_o it_o can_v not_o be_v hide_v from_o he_o who_o with_o his_o eye_n behold_v all_o thing_n and_o know_v all_o thing_n if_o he_o see_v it_o and_o forbid_v it_o he_o embrace_v not_o we_o with_o fatherlie_a good_a will_n who_o may_v seem_v to_o deny_v man_n so_o great_a a_o good_a furthermore_o the_o apostle_n note_n note_n who_o omit_v nothing_o which_o may_v further_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n make_v no_o mention_n in_o any_o place_n of_o that_o so_o great_a a_o commodity_n but_o by_o their_o action_n they_o bewray_v themselves_o for_o those_o image_n unto_o the_o which_o the_o foolish_a people_n run_v on_o pilgrimage_n by_o heap_n be_v cover_v many_o time_n with_o great_a devotion_n and_o hide_a with_o great_a diligence_n so_o that_o scarslie_o they_o be_v open_v to_o noble_a man_n cardinal_n and_o prince_n and_o the_o séelie_o ignorant_a people_n for_o who_o sake_n they_o will_v that_o those_o image_n be_v devise_v shall_v always_o have_v those_o book_n shut_v up_o before_o they_o neither_o be_v we_o to_o pass_v much_o upon_o the_o second_o synod_n of_o nice_a for_o if_o a_o man_n do_v weigh_v but_o with_o mean_a diligence_n the_o reason_n of_o those_o bishop_n whereby_o they_o establish_v image_n he_o can_v not_o refrain_v from_o laugh_v moreover_o against_o that_o synod_n we_o will_v oppose_v the_o synod_n eliberina_n in_o the_o which_o as_o i_o have_v before_o declare_v picture_n and_o image_n be_v forbid_v further_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o these_o man_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o object_v against_o we_o the_o place_n of_o paul_n wherein_o he_o say_v to_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_o see_v in_o that_o place_n he_o intreat_v only_o of_o mean_a and_o indifferent_a thing_n and_o not_o dangerous_a and_o forbid_a thing_n and_o see_v now_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o nature_n and_o antiquity_n of_o image_n and_o have_v distinguish_v they_o by_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o signify_v that_o some_o represent_v god_n other_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n and_o have_v set_v forth_o what_o move_v man_n to_o endeavour_v themselves_o to_o express_v god_n by_o image_n and_o have_v show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o represent_v god_n by_o picture_n partly_o in_o respect_n it_o can_v be_v and_o partly_o because_o he_o himself_o have_v forbid_v it_o and_o have_v also_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o let_v but_o that_o thing_n create_v may_v be_v resemble_v in_o image_n so_o that_o no_o honour_n or_o worship_n be_v do_v unto_o they_o and_o at_o the_o last_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v set_v in_o holy_a place_n we_o think_v now_o that_o we_o have_v sufficient_o speak_v of_o they_o of_o cherubin_n 5._o in_o .1_o king_n 6_o of_o the_o name_n and_o form_n of_o cherubin_n ezech._n 1_o 5._o 30_o as_o concern_v the_o name_n aben-ezra_n write_v that_o some_o make_v the_o same_o a_o general_a word_n to_o all_o grave_a and_o carve_a thing_n and_o to_o image_n yet_o so_o nevertheless_o as_o those_o which_o be_v write_v of_o in_o the_o law_n be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v the_o shape_n of_o man_n but_o in_o ezechiel_n the_o form_n of_o they_o be_v describe_v namely_o of_o a_o lion_n of_o a_o ox_n &_o of_o a_o eagle_n &_o not_o of_o a_o man_n shape_n only_o yea_o further_o .16_o ezech._n 18_o 14_o and_o .16_o in_o the_o same_o prophet_n a_o king_n be_v call_v cherub_n because_o he_o abound_v with_o great_a dignity_n glory_n and_o riches_n sometime_o that_o word_n be_v write_v at_o full_a to_o wit_n with_o the_o letter_n vau_fw-fr but_o sometime_o in_o the_o place_n thereof_o be_v put_v 23_o exo._n 25_o 18._o 1._o king_n 6_o 23_o kibbutz_n howbeit_o solomon_n seem_v to_o have_v follow_v moses_n for_o he_o also_o in_o his_o tabernacle_n have_v two_o melt_a cherubim_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a inward_a coorten_v which_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n have_v cherubim_n of_o needle_n work_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o both_o solomon_n make_v two_o grave_v cherubim_n and_o also_o upon_o the_o wall_n make_v many_o set_v out_o fine_o in_o séeled_a work_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o ancient_a hebrew_n interpreter_n which_o think_v that_o the_o word_n cherubin_n be_v compound_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o first_o letter_n caph_n be_v a_o note_n of_o similitude_n then_o the_o verb_n rab_n be_v add_v which_o signify_v to_o nourish_v or_o to_o grow_v whereof_o be_v make_v the_o noun_n rabum_n and_o rabi_n which_o signify_v child_n and_o young_a man_n because_o they_o grow_v and_o increase_v in_o stature_n but_o this_o have_v no_o likelihood_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o etymology_n of_o a_o hebrew_n name_n shall_v be_v fetch_v from_o the_o chaldaean_a tongue_n as_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o they_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o moses_n be_v of_o massy_a gold_n for_o they_o stretch_v forth_o their_o wing_n from_o on_o high_a on_o both_o side_n of_o the_o mercy_n seat_n with_o their_o face_n one_o towards_o a_o other_o and_o the_o mercy_n seat_n be_v a_o table_n of_o the_o same_o length_n and_o breadth_n that_o the_o ark_n of_o covenant_n be_v 13_o what_o be_v the_o propitiatory_a or_o mercy_n seat_n 1._o king_n 6_o 13_o which_o consist_v of_o mass_n and_o pure_a gold_n and_o out_o of_o that_o table_n as_o be_v say_v two_o cherubim_n do_v rise_v up_o the_o stuff_n whereof_o salomon_n cherubim_v be_v make_v be_v wood_n of_o the_o olive_n which_o undoubted_o be_v very_o hard_a wherefore_o in_o carve_v or_o grave_v the_o same_o artificer_n do_v take_v great_a pain_n but_o it_o endure_v very_o long_o 31_o in_o this_o place_n r._n david_n kimhi_n demand_v how_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o solomon_n to_o cut_v down_o olive_n tree_n because_o they_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n tree_n deut._n 20_o 19_o by_o what_o right_a solomon_n cut_v down_o olive_n tree_n and_o in_o deuteronomie_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o those_o kind_n of_o tree_n shall_v not_o be_v hew_v down_o no_o not_o upon_o the_o land_n of_o the_o enemy_n by_o some_o it_o
against_o he_o which_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o contumely_n for_o than_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v just_a must_v justly_o be_v do_v but_o thou_o say_v that_o he_o himself_o do_v lie_v thou_o must_v not_o become_v like_a unto_o he_o if_o in_o those_o case_n which_o i_o have_v express_v reproach_n be_v not_o repress_v at_o the_o least_o wise_a we_o shall_v declare_v by_o live_v well_o &_o by_o the_o deed_n themselves_o which_o in_o word_n we_o can_v that_o he_o have_v make_v a_o lie_n many_o have_v be_v content_a to_o use_v a_o general_a reason_n namely_o that_o the_o spirit_n will_v teach_v we_o when_o injury_n be_v to_o be_v suffer_v and_o when_o not_o and_o that_o even_o at_o the_o very_a push_n we_o shall_v take_v counsel_n the_o ethnik_n will_v say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v wisdom_n and_o reason_n howbeit_o i_o think_v good_a to_o open_v these_o point_n somewhat_o more_o particular_o 6_o come_v we_o then_o unto_o david_n he_o use_v three_o reason_n weigh_v the_o reason_n of_o david_n weigh_v the_o which_o must_v only_o take_v place_n in_o those_o case_n wherein_o injury_n and_o reproach_n ought_v to_o be_v suffer_v and_o not_o general_o for_o sometime_o they_o be_v to_o be_v suffer_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v hinder_v you_o not_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n god_n have_v command_v he_o to_o curse_v i_o etc._n etc._n to_o this_o we_o say_v that_o in_o that_o case_n the_o reason_n be_v good_a not_o that_o we_o shall_v conclude_v general_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o wickedness_n punish_v we_o will_v always_o say_v it_o be_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n he_o will_v take_v it_o away_o when_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a unto_o he_o the_o second_o reason_n be_v i_o abide_v great_a thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o my_o son_n and_o shall_v i_o not_o bear_v these_o thing_n this_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n to_o comfort_v ourselves_o in_o affliction_n and_o to_o make_v we_o circumspect_a what_o we_o do_v but_o general_o it_o be_v not_o of_o force_n if_o the_o magistrate_n say_v i_o have_v bear_v this_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n therefore_o i_o can_v the_o easy_o bear_v evilles_n he_o shall_v leave_v wickedness_n unpunished_a the_o three_o reason_n also_o be_v not_o universal_a god_n see_v this_o affliction_n and_o lay_v up_o good_a for_o i_o in_o store_n this_o in_o very_a deed_n we_o ought_v to_o think_v if_o we_o be_v compel_v to_o suffer_v contumely_n yet_o be_v we_o not_o always_o bind_v to_o suffer_v it_o these_o thing_n have_v we_o speak_v concern_v the_o reason_n of_o david_n contumely_n whether_o david_n do_v well_o in_o bear_v of_o the_o contumely_n now_o must_v we_o show_v wherefore_o he_o dissemble_v &_o whether_o he_o do_v well_o therein_o in_o my_o judgement_n he_o do_v well_o and_o his_o purpose_n be_v allow_v unto_o the_o soldier_n and_o nobility_n which_o he_o have_v with_o he_o he_o be_v busy_v about_o other_o matter_n he_o be_v escape_v away_o he_o then_o think_v upon_o his_o sin_n and_o impute_v it_o to_o the_o revenge_n which_o god_n have_v foreshow_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v doubtless_o he_o do_v not_o utterlie_o pardon_v the_o offence_n but_o defer_v the_o punishment_n all_o thing_n have_v their_o time_n it_o be_v now_o needful_a for_o he_o to_o repent_v he_o weep_v and_o lament_v another_o cause_n which_o may_v persuade_v he_o be_v herein_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v sudden_o draw_v to_o fury_n and_o overmuch_o move_v with_o cruelty_n and_o it_o be_v then_o sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o keep_v within_o his_o bound_n a_o three_o reason_n he_o see_v in_o spirit_n for_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o god_n will_v have_v he_o even_o at_o this_o instant_n to_o suffer_v this_o reproach_n thus_o far_o have_v we_o speak_v hereof_o 7_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v 5._o in_o 1._o cor._n 4._o verse_n 5._o after_o what_o sort_n paul_n forbid_v judgement_n see_v we_o must_v very_o oftentimes_o judge_v while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n for_o it_o behoove_v that_o every_o man_n do_v judge_v and_o examine_v himself_o yea_o and_o other_o also_o when_o need_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o intent_n they_o ma●e_n be_v warn_v and_o amend_v necessary_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o commonweal_n and_o in_o a_o household_n be_v necessary_a the_o church_n pronounce_v sentence_n of_o judgement_n against_o those_o which_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v there_o be_v also_o political_a or_o civil_a judgement_n and_o in_o household_n affair_n we_o choose_v unto_o we_o wife_n maiden_n &_o servant_n and_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v choose_v deacons_n curate_n &_o bishop_n which_o kind_n of_o election_n can_v proceed_v without_o judgement_n wherefore_o we_o answer_v that_o judgement_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n sort_n judgement_n of_o two_o sort_n either_o private_a or_o public_a and_o those_o which_o be_v public_a perteine_a either_o to_o policy_n or_o else_o unto_o the_o church_n civil_a judgement_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o the_o gospel_n away_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n be_v not_o take_v away_o but_o rather_o amend_v and_o correct_v as_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v perceive_v when_o the_o place_n serve_v but_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n can_v be_v remoove_v by_o man_n authority_n for_o christ_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o brotherlie_a correction_n give_v commandment_n thereof_o augustine_n matt._n 18_o 15._o matth._n 7_o 5._o from_o whence_o private_a judgement_n do_v spring_n augustine_n private_a judgement_n do_v either_o spring_n of_o charity_n and_o right_a consideration_n or_o else_o of_o ill_a affection_n which_o be_v envy_n and_o pride_n as_o augustine_n have_v in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o monte_fw-fr while_o he_o entreat_v of_o those_o word_n which_o be_v read_v in_o matthew_n judge_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v not_o judge_v by_o which_o say_v of_o christ_n the_o sentence_n of_o paul_n must_v be_v measure_v and_o in_o these_o judgement_n which_o we_o exercise_v by_o charity_n fault_n we_o must_v ●ot_n rash_o ●udge_v of_o o●her_a man_n fault_n we_o must_v take_v special_a heed_n that_o the_o sin_n which_o either_o we_o judge_v or_o reproove_v be_v through_o know_v to_o we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o rash_o give_v credit_n to_o rumour_n or_o slander_n further_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v without_o compassion_n and_o pity_n away_o with_o triumph_v mock_a reproach_n the_o which_o shall_v best_o be_v do_v if_o we_o remember_v that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v man_n and_o prone_a by_o nature_n unto_o those_o vice_n and_o not_o yet_o assure_v but_o that_o we_o may_v at_o sometime_o fall_v into_o the_o very_a same_o offence_n therefore_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 1._o gala._n 6_o 1._o consider_v thyself_o lest_o thou_o also_o be_v tempt_v and_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o confession_n write_v augustine_n augustine_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o he_o have_v forgive_v but_o also_o for_o those_o which_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n we_o have_v not_o commit_v over_o and_o beside_o in_o his_o 15._o epistle_n to_o jerom_n when_o he_o have_v lament_v for_o the_o contention_n which_o have_v happen_v between_o he_o and_o ruffinus_n he_o say_v that_o he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o himself_o will_v have_v do_v if_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v against_o jerom_n have_v be_v write_v against_o he_o and_o moreover_o in_o judge_v there_o must_v never_o be_v so_o firm_a a_o determination_n as_o though_o he_o which_o be_v fall_v can_v not_o be_v restore_v again_o 8_o and_o touch_v those_o thing_n which_o ought_v to_o withdraw_v we_o from_o a_o light_n rash_a and_o hasty_a judgement_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostome_n do_v make_v mention_n first_o see_v our_o own_o state_n be_v very_o much_o unknown_a to_o our_o own_o self_n judgement_n what_o thing_n shall_v revoke_v we_o from_o rash_a judgement_n we_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o the_o state_n of_o other_o man_n be_v very_o hardly_o to_o be_v know_v furthermore_o there_o be_v many_o circumstance_n whereby_o man_n action_n be_v define_v which_o we_o can_v always_o perceive_v although_o we_o have_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o give_v judgement_n of_o it_o again_o the_o very_a thing_n that_o we_o see_v be_v otherwhiles_o so_o doubtful_a as_o we_o may_v understand_v they_o as_o well_o in_o the_o good_a part_n as_o in_o the_o ill_a then_o it_o be_v better_a to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n in_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v doubtful_a to_o conclude_v he_o that_o judge_v must_v be_v spiritual_a see_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n it_o be_v write_v the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n 15._o 1._o cor._n 2_o
that_o death_n be_v due_a to_o sin_n as_o paul_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v 23._o rom._n 6_o 23._o say_v the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n and_o that_o god_n in_o genesis_n warn_v adam_n say_v in_o what_o day_n soever_o you_o shall_v eat_v of_o that_o tree_n 17._o gen._n 2_o 17._o you_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n and_o they_o that_o offer_v sacrifice_n will_v not_o die_v themselves_o wherefore_o in_o steed_n of_o themselves_o they_o put_v to_o be_v slay_v a_o bullock_n or_o a_o goat_n lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o those_o beast_n as_o if_o they_o have_v declare_v that_o they_o themselves_o indeed_o be_v sinner_n but_o that_o they_o will_v lay_v their_o sin_n upon_o the_o sacrifice_n so_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v punish_v for_o they_o but_o this_o be_v no_o just_a mend_n make_v because_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v of_o much_o great_a value_n than_o be_v the_o life_n of_o a_o beast_n wherefore_o by_o this_o ceremony_n the_o people_n be_v teach_v that_o they_o shall_v wait_v for_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o perfect_a namely_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n of_o who_o john_n in_o plain_a word_n testify_v 29._o john_n 1_o 29._o behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o esaie_n prophesy_v of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v lead_v as_o a_o sheep_n to_o the_o slaughter_n 3._o esai_n 57_o 3._o after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o be_v christ_n figure_v in_o the_o old_a sacrifice_n but_o thou_o will_v demand_v moreover_o whether_o the_o old_a church_n understand_v this_o true_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o same_o be_v know_v in_o those_o day_n i_o mean_v of_o godly_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v studious_a in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o not_o of_o idle_a person_n and_o contemner_n for_o they_o may_v consider_v 22._o levit._fw-la 1_o 4_o and_o in_o many_o place_n more_o psalm_n 50_o verse_n 8_o etc._n etc._n esaie_n 1_o 11._o jerem._n 6_o 20_o and_o 7_o 22._o amos._n 5_o 22._o that_o god_n first_o say_v that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o sacrifice_a beast_n and_o yet_o that_o he_o afterward_o in_o the_o psalm_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n testify_v that_o he_o be_v not_o delit_v with_o those_o sacrifice_n these_o two_o place_n seem_n in_o outward_a show_n to_o be_v repugnant_a must_v so_o be_v reconcile_v as_o the_o people_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o latter_a sentence_n shall_v be_v teach_v that_o those_o sacrifice_n of_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o nature_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o please_v god_n who_o only_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v gracious_a and_o merciful_a and_o in_o those_o sacrifice_n set_v forth_o the_o messiah_n to_o be_v behold_v who_o be_v look_v for_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o all_o do_v not_o behold_v he_o concern_v those_o which_o be_v idle_a and_o negligent_a i_o grant_v no_o less_o when_o as_o notwithstanding_o this_o be_v beat_v even_o into_o their_o memory_n by_o the_o prophet_n see_v by_o they_o be_v often_o repeat_v the_o promise_n make_v before_o time_n unto_o abraham_n touch_v messiah_n as_o many_o therefore_o of_o they_o as_o do_v earnest_o apply_v their_o mind_n unto_o that_o doctrine_n may_v easy_o behold_v christ_n in_o those_o sacrifice_n but_o it_o be_v yet_o object_v why_o do_v they_o never_o expresselie_o call_v upon_o christ_n why_o do_v they_o not_o pray_v for_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o messiah_n sake_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o perform_v those_o thing_n abundantlie_o when_o as_o they_o say_v remember_v lord_n the_o covenant_n that_o thou_o have_v make_v with_o abraham_n 2._o song_n of_o the_o three_o child_n 35._o psal_n 132_o 2._o isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o also_o with_o david_n for_o even_o to_o those_o father_n be_v promise_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n wherein_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v bless_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o christ_n as_o paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o do_v express_v wherefore_o 16._o gal._n 3_o 16._o so_o often_o as_o the_o old_a father_n call_v these_o thing_n to_o remembrance_n they_o no_o less_o include_v christ_n in_o their_o prayer_n than_o we_o at_o this_o day_n do_v when_o we_o pray_v for_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v grant_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o xuj_o chapter_n of_o the_o likeness_n and_o unlikeness_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a league_n or_o covenant_n the_o word_n league_n in_o latin_a foedus_fw-la end_n in_o judg._n 2_o about_o the_o end_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o verb_n ferire_fw-la to_o strike_v because_o the_o ambassador_n of_o each_o party_n kill_v a_o hog_n from_o which_o etymology_n perhaps_o the_o hebrew_n word_n kerith_n differ_v not_o much_o by_o which_o outward_a sign_n also_o they_o wish_v by_o prayer_n the_o destruction_n of_o that_o part_n which_o shall_v violate_v the_o covenant_n as_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o livy_n in_o his_o first_o book_n after_o the_o build_n of_o the_o city_n and_o as_o the_o same_o author_n write_v in_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la macedonico_n there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o league_n the_o first_o kind_n be_v where_o the_o conqueror_n make_v law_n unto_o they_o who_o they_o have_v conquer_v in_o punish_v and_o command_v they_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o will_v afterward_o have_v they_o to_o do_v the_o second_o kind_n be_v when_o thing_n be_v yet_o in_o their_o own_o state_n and_o neither_o party_n overcome_v they_o agree_v together_o that_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v take_v from_o each_o party_n may_v be_v restore_v and_o that_o covenant_n of_o peace_n may_v be_v establish_v the_o three_o kind_n be_v when_o there_o have_v be_v no_o war_n between_o the_o party_n and_o when_o certain_a city_n or_o prince_n be_v join_v together_o by_o some_o covenant_n either_o to_o live_v the_o more_o peaceable_o or_o else_o to_o take_v some_o public_a affair_n in_o hand_n these_o thing_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a declare_v let_v we_o show_v what_o a_o league_n be_v a_o league_n be_v that_o bond_n between_o man_n be_v what_o a_o league_n be_v whereby_o they_o testify_v both_o by_o word_n and_o sign_n one_o to_o another_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v certain_a thing_n so_o long_o as_o they_o deal_v faithful_o either_o towards_o other_o and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o bond_n and_o perteine_a to_o relation_n it_o be_v ground_v upon_o humane_a action_n and_o be_v refer_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o party_n confederate_a ought_v to_o perform_v one_o towards_o another_o it_o be_v express_v by_o word_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n sign_n be_v add_v when_o god_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o mankind_n after_o the_o flood_n 13._o gen._n 9_o 9_o and_o 13._o he_o not_o only_o set_v forth_o the_o form_n of_o the_o bond_n by_o word_n but_o he_o also_o put_v the_o rainbow_n in_o the_o cloud_n as_o a_o witness_n and_o in_o the_o covenant_n which_o he_o make_v with_o abraham_n 10_o gent._n 17_o 10_o he_o put_v the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n furthermore_o in_o the_o same_o which_o be_v make_v by_o moses_n at_o the_o mount_n sina_n 8_o exo._n 24_o 4_o 8_o there_o be_v twelve_o pillar_n erect_v and_o the_o people_n be_v sprinkle_v with_o blood_n 26._o josua_n 24_o 26._o josua_n also_o when_o he_o shall_v die_v erect_v up_o a_o very_a great_a stone_n thereby_o as_o it_o be_v to_o sign_n the_o league_n renew_v between_o god_n &_o the_o people_n and_o what_o the_o promise_n be_v which_o shall_v be_v keep_v of_o each_o partée_n the_o scripture_n oftentimes_o teach_v man_n the_o covenant_n that_o be_v make_v both_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n for_o god_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o his_o people_n namely_o that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o to_o help_v they_o to_o deliver_v they_o and_o by_o all_o mean_n as_o touch_v all_o kind_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o bless_v they_o the_o people_n again_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v count_v the_o lord_n jehovah_n for_o their_o god_n in_o beléeve_v worship_a and_o obeieng_v he_o and_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o league_n as_o the_o mediator_n between_o each_o party_n this_o be_v the_o exposition_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o man_n league_n how_o the_o league_n be_v divide_v into_o the_o old_a and_o new_a league_n 2_o league_n be_v divide_v into_o the_o new_a and_o into_o the_o old_a which_o division_n be_v not_o of_o a_o general_a thing_n into_o special_a thing_n but_o of_o the_o subject_n into_o accident_n forsomuch_o as_o in_o either_o league_n the_o thing_n itself_o and_o the_o substance_n be_v utterlie_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o only_o certain_a quality_n do_v vary_v for_o the_o old_a league_n be_v make_v with_o one_o only_a
the_o definition_n of_o predestination_n i_o think_v it_o best_o to_o begin_v with_o that_o which_o the_o logician_n call_v quid_fw-la nominis_fw-la that_o be_v nominis_fw-la quid_fw-la nominis_fw-la what_o the_o word_n signify_v the_o grecian_n call_v predestination_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v to_o determine_v and_o appoint_v before_o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v terminus_n that_o be_v a_o bound_n or_o a_o limit_n so_o as_o the_o elect_n be_v separate_v asunder_o from_o they_o that_o be_v not_o elect_v the_o latin_n call_v this_o praedestinatio_fw-la for_o to_o destinate_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o firm_o in_o mind_n to_o determine_v and_o constant_o to_o appoint_v any_o thing_n or_o by_o some_o firm_a decree_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o direct_v a_o thing_n to_o some_o purpose_n but_o predestination_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o way_n predestination_n be_v take_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n may_v be_v take_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n either_o as_o touch_v the_o bring_n of_o it_o to_o the_o effect_n as_o that_o paul_n go_v to_o damascus_n be_v convert_v to_o christ_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v separate_v from_o the_o unbeléever_n 9_o acts._n 9_o or_o in_o respect_n it_o be_v with_o god_n from_o eternity_n before_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o this_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o galathian_o say_v 15._o galat._n 1_o 15._o that_o he_o be_v set_v apart_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n from_o his_o mother_n womb_n long_o before_o he_o be_v convert_v and_o to_o the_o ephesian_n also_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v predestinate_a before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v and_o to_o the_o roman_n 4._o ephes_n 1_o 4._o of_o the_o twin_n he_o say_v 11._o rom._n 9_o 11._o before_o they_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v and_o we_o at_o this_o present_n speak_v of_o this_o eternal_a predestination_n of_o god_n predestination_n another_o distinction_n of_o predestination_n wherefore_o the_o other_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o declaration_n of_o this_o predestination_n therefore_o predestination_n may_v be_v take_v both_o common_o and_o proper_o but_o forsomuch_o as_o god_n do_v all_o thing_n by_o a_o appoint_a counsel_n and_o nothing_o by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n undoubted_o whatsoever_o he_o creat_v or_o do_v he_o appoint_v it_o to_o some_o end_n or_o use_v after_o this_o manner_n neither_o the_o wicked_a nor_o the_o devil_n himself_o nor_o sin_n can_v be_v exclude_v from_o predestination_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n do_v god_n use_v according_a to_o his_o will_n wherefore_o paul_n call_v wicked_a man_n vow_v to_o utter_a damnation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o vessel_n of_o god_n 22._o rom._n 9_o 22._o upon_o who_o he_o make_v open_a his_o wrath_n and_o solomon_n in_o his_o proverb_n say_v 4._o prou._n 16_o 4._o that_o god_n make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o 16._o exod._n 9_o 16._o and_o the_o wicked_a man_n also_o to_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o of_o pharaoh_n it_o be_v say_v even_o to_o this_o end_n have_v i_o raise_v thou_o up_o to_o show_v my_o power_n in_o thou_o yea_o if_o predestination_n be_v thus_o take_v then_o shall_v it_o be_v common_a to_o all_o thing_n neither_o shall_v this_o word_n signify_v any_o thing_n else_o than_o the_o eternal_a ordinance_n of_o god_n touch_v his_o creature_n unto_o some_o certain_a use_n of_o he_o but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o much_o use_n this_o word_n but_o touch_v the_o elect_a only_o although_o in_o the_o 4._o chap._n of_o the_o act_n we_o read_v 28._o verse_n 28._o they_o assemble_v together_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o thy_o hand_n and_o counsel_n have_v predestinate_v to_o be_v do_v which_o word_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n &_o unto_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n pass_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o election_n to_o salvation_n but_o if_o they_o have_v a_o respect_n unto_o those_o also_o which_o assemble_v together_o against_o the_o lord_n they_o comprehend_v likewise_o the_o reprobate_n but_o now_o let_v we_o judge_v by_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o for_o the_o most_o part_n use_v to_o speak_v wherefore_o the_o schoole-divines_a also_o affirm_v predestinate_a the_o scholman_n affirm_v that_o only_o the_o elect_a be_v predestinate_a that_o the_o elect_v only_o and_o not_o the_o reprobate_n be_v predestinate_a that_o opinion_n will_v we_o also_o at_o this_o present_n follow_v not_o because_o of_o that_o reason_n which_o they_o bring_v for_o it_o be_v a_o reason_n very_o weak_a as_o we_o shall_v afterward_o declare_v in_o due_a place_n but_o because_o i_o see_v the_o scripture_n so_o speak_v for_o the_o most_o part_n wherefore_o in_o this_o treatise_n contrary_a in_o this_o treatise_n under_o the_o name_n of_o predestination_n be_v comprehend_v the_o saint_n only_o what_o predestination_n signify_v predestination_n and_o reprobation_n quite_o contrary_a under_o the_o name_n of_o predestination_n we_o will_v comprehend_v the_o saint_n only_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n i_o think_v augustine_n entitle_v his_o book_n de_fw-fr praedestinatione_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la that_o be_v of_o the_o predestination_n of_o saint_n which_o signify_v the_o decree_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o saint_n be_v appoint_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o salvation_n and_o unto_o predestination_n by_o antithesis_fw-la or_o contrary_a position_n be_v set_v reprobation_n thus_o far_o as_o touch_v the_o word_n 10_o now_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a definition_n we_o must_v suppose_v certain_a thing_n of_o which_o the_o first_o pertain_v to_o the_o foreknowing_a of_o god_n which_o as_o paul_n testify_v be_v join_v together_o with_o predestination_n for_o who_o he_o have_v foreknow_v say_v he_o those_o have_v he_o predestinate_v 28._o rom._n 8_o 28._o and_o although_o in_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o yet_o because_o of_o our_o capacity_n and_o understanding_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o be_v by_o some_o manner_n of_o way_n to_o be_v distinguish_v so_o as_o we_o must_v understand_v prescience_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n extend_v further_a than_o his_o prescience_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n extend_v further_a than_o his_o prescience_n for_o his_o knowledge_n reach_v not_o only_o to_o thing_n present_a past_a and_o to_o come_v but_o also_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v never_o come_v to_o pass_v whether_o they_o be_v possible_a as_o man_n speak_v or_o unpossible_a howbeit_o this_o prescience_n pertain_v but_o unto_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v forknowledge_n god_n will_v go_v before_o his_o forknowledge_n so_o that_o prescience_n require_v a_o will_n which_o go_v before_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v except_o god_n will_v have_v it_o so_o for_o other_o wise_a he_o will_v let_v it_o wherefore_o god_n foreknoweth_a those_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v have_v come_v to_o pass_v further_o god_n do_v not_o also_o predestinate_a all_o those_o who_o he_o foreknoweth_a predestination_n the_o prescience_n of_o god_n extend_v further_a than_o his_o predestination_n for_o he_o foreknoweth_a the_o reprobate_n who_o he_o know_v shall_v be_v damn_v but_o even_o as_o the_o prescience_n of_o god_n have_v join_v with_o it_o his_o will_n &_o yet_o notwithstanding_o pertain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n or_o understanding_n of_o god_n so_o contrariwise_o predestination_n although_o it_o can_v be_v without_o foreknowledge_n will_n prescience_n belong_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o god_n predestination_n to_o his_o will_n yet_o it_o proper_o pertain_v unto_o the_o will_n which_o thing_n paul_n declare_v to_o the_o ephesian_n when_o he_o teach_v that_o 11._o ephe._n 1_o 11._o we_o be_v predestinate_a according_a to_o purpose_n by_o the_o power_n whereof_o god_n work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o his_o will_n by_o these_o thing_n we_o may_v after_o a_o sort_n see_v how_o predestination_n be_v join_v with_o foreknowledge_n and_o how_o it_o differ_v from_o it_o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o it_o have_v common_a with_o providence_n or_o wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o same_o differ_v wherein_o predestination_n &_o foreknowledge_n agree_v and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v this_o it_o have_v common_a with_o providence_n that_o either_o of_o they_o require_v knowledge_n and_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o will_n and_o that_o either_o of_o they_o have_v a_o respect_n unto_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o herein_o they_o differ_v for_o that_o providence_n comprehend_v all_o creature_n but_o predestination_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o it_o pertain_v only_o unto_o the_o saint_n and_o unto_o the_o elect_a beside_o this_o providence_n direct_v thing_n to_o their_o natural_a end_n but_o predestination_n lead_v to_o those_o end_n which_o be_v above_o nature_n as_o be_v this_o to_o be_v adopt_v
follow_v in_o that_o chapter_n you_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o apostle_n draw_v those_o thing_n 16._o unto_o what_o principal_a point_v the_o predestination_n of_o god_n be_v reduce_v rom._n 9_o 21._o ephes_n 1_o 9_o rom._n 9_o 18._o ibidem_fw-la 16._o which_o he_o teach_v of_o predestination_n to_o these_o principal_a point_n namely_o unto_o power_n for_o he_o say_v have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n unto_o purpose_n or_o good_a pleasure_n for_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n he_o use_v both_o word_n unto_o will_n for_o he_o say_v he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v unto_o mercy_n or_o love_n for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o that_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o have_v mercy_n 13._o ibidem_fw-la 13._o also_o jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v see_v paul_n what_o cause_n soever_o either_o here_o or_o in_o any_o other_o place_n he_o give_v of_o predestination_n reduce_v the_o same_o to_o these_o four_o principal_a point_n can_v we_o doubt_v of_o his_o meaning_n or_o shall_v we_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o give_v sentence_n otherwise_o but_o as_o touch_v work_n he_o speak_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n wheresoever_o he_o intreat_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o only_o to_o exclude_v they_o further_o consider_v this_o work_n if_o election_n shall_v depend_v of_o work_n foresee_v than_o justification_n shall_v come_v by_o work_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o against_o the_o scope_n and_o meaning_n of_o paul_n than_o to_o put_v work_v foresee_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n for_o by_o that_o mean_n work_n shall_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o justification_n but_o that_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n do_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o mean_n oppugn_v and_o hereby_o i_o prove_v this_o reason_n to_o be_v firm_a justification_n predestination_n the_o cause_n of_o vocation_n and_o vocation_n the_o cause_n of_o justification_n because_o the_o apostle_n make_v predestination_n the_o cause_n of_o call_v and_o call_v the_o cause_n of_o justification_n wherefore_o if_o work_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n they_o shall_v also_o be_v cause_n of_o justification_n for_o this_o be_v a_o firm_a rule_n among_o the_o logician_n whatsoever_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o any_o cause_n be_v also_o cause_n of_o the_o effect_n further_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o good_a work_n procee_v of_o predestination_n for_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v predestinate_a 4._o ephes_n 1_o 4._o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a &_o blameless_a and_o god_n by_o predestination_n have_v prepare_v good_a work_n 10._o ephes_n 2_o 10._o in_o which_o we_o shall_v walk_v and_o paul_n himself_o confess_v that_o he_o obtain_v mercy_n 25._o 1._o cor._n 7_o 25._o to_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v be_v faithful_a wherefore_o if_o work_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n how_o can_v we_o then_o say_v thereof_o work_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o and_o chéeflie_o those_o kind_n of_o cause_n which_o be_v call_v efficient_a cause_n for_o that_o use_n of_o free_a will_n be_v nothing_o worth_a which_o they_o so_o often_o brag_v of_o as_o though_o we_o have_v it_o of_o ourselves_o and_o not_o of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o paul_n say_v that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v 13._o phil._n 2_o 13._o and_o god_n in_o ezechiel_n say_v 19_o eze._n 11_o 19_o i_o will_v take_v away_o from_o they_o their_o stony_a hart_n and_o will_v give_v they_o a_o hart_n of_o flesh_n we_o can_v say_v paul_n think_v any_o good_a thing_n of_o ourselves_o as_o of_o ourselves_o 5._o 2._o cor._n 3_o 5._o and_o if_o we_o have_v in_o ourselves_o that_o good_a use_n which_o they_o speak_v of_o what_o shall_v let_v but_o that_o we_o may_v glory_v thereof_o undoubted_o the_o lord_n say_v no_o man_n come_v unto_o i_o 44_o john_n 6_o 44_o unless_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o and_o jerom_n against_o the_o pelagian_n very_o well_o write_v that_o they_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v draw_v be_v by_o that_o word_n signify_v unwilling_a they_o which_o be_v draw_v be_v before_o unwilling_a to_o have_v be_v before_o froward_a resist_a and_o unwilling_a but_o afterward_o god_n so_o work_v that_o he_o change_v they_o this_o self-same_a thing_n also_o do_v the_o nature_n of_o grace_n prove_v for_o paul_n say_v that_o the_o remnant_n may_v be_v save_v 5._o rom._n 11_o 5._o according_a to_o the_o free_a election_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o free_a election_n for_o so_o be_v the_o genetive_n case_n after_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n to_o be_v resolve_v 19_o further_n in_o the_o definition_n of_o predestination_n in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o have_v put_v this_o word_n purpose_n which_o see_v it_o signify_v nothing_o else_o as_o we_o have_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n but_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n 9_o ephes_n 1_o 9_o thereby_o it_o evident_o appear_v that_o we_o may_v not_o elsewhere_o seek_v the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n moreover_o call_n good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o call_n work_n can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o call_n and_o much_o less_o of_o our_o predestination_n for_o predestination_n go_v before_o call_v and_o that_o work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o call_v it_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o epistle_n unto_o timothy_n god_n have_v call_v we_o say_v paul_n with_o his_o holy_a call_n 9_o 2._o tim._n 1_o 9_o not_o by_o our_o work_n but_o according_a to_o his_o purpose_n &_o the_o grace_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o world_n be_v hereby_o it_o must_v manifest_o appear_v that_o work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o call_n yea_o neither_o also_o be_v work_n the_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n which_o yet_o be_v far_o more_o likely_a for_o by_o good_a work_n god_n bring_v we_o to_o felicity_n 33._o titus_n 3_o 4._o if_o we_o shall_v be_v predestinate_v by_o good_a work_n the_o exclamation_n of_o paul_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n rom._n 11_o 33._o but_o paul_n to_o titus_n say_v that_o god_n have_v save_v we_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n further_o what_o need_v paul_n after_o this_o disputation_n to_o cry_v out_o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o unsercheable_a be_v his_o judgement_n and_o his_o way_n past_o find_v out_o for_o if_o he_o will_v have_v follow_v these_o man_n opinion_n he_o may_v with_o one_o poor_a word_n have_v dispatch_v the_o whole_a matter_n &_o have_v say_v that_o some_o be_v predestinate_a and_o othersome_a reject_v because_o of_o the_o work_n which_o god_n foresee_v shall_v be_v in_o both_o of_o they_o those_o man_n augustine_n in_o mockage_n call_v sharp_a witted_a man_n which_o so_o trimlie_o and_o so_o easy_o see_v those_o thing_n that_o paul_n can_v not_o see_v but_o say_v they_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n assoil_v this_o question_n but_o it_o be_v absurd_a so_o to_o say_v especial_o see_v that_o he_o bring_v it_o in_o of_o purpose_n and_o the_o solution_n thereof_o serve_v very_o much_o unto_o that_o which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n 13._o the_o questi_fw-la be_v assoil_v when_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o high_a cause_n exo._n 19_o 13._o and_o how_o in_o god_n name_n can_v he_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v assoil_v the_o question_n when_o he_o reduce_v that_o even_o unto_o the_o high_a cause_n namely_o unto_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o therewithal_o show_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o go_v any_o further_o when_o god_n have_v appoint_v limit_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o mount_n sina_n if_o any_o man_n have_v go_v beyond_o those_o limit_n he_o be_v by_o the_o law_n punish_v wherefore_o let_v these_o man_n beware_v with_o what_o boldness_n they_o presume_v to_o go_v further_o than_o paul_n will_v they_o shall_v but_o they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n here_o rebuke_v the_o impudent_a be_v it_o so_o but_o yet_o this_o rebuke_v be_v a_o most_o true_a solution_n of_o the_o question_n for_o paul_n by_o this_o reprehension_n prohibit_v we_o not_o to_o inquire_v any_o thing_n beyond_o the_o mercy_n and_o will_n of_o god_n assoil_v how_o the_o question_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v assoil_v and_o not_o assoil_v if_o these_o man_n understand_v such_o a_o solution_n as_o man_n reason_n may_v resolve_v upon_o i_o will_v easy_o grant_v that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o so_o assoil_v but_o if_o they_o seek_v that_o solution_n which_o faith_n ought_v to_o embrace_v and_o to_o rest_v upon_o they_o be_v blind_a if_o they_o see_v not_o the_o solution_n 20_o but_o let_v
purpose_n of_o god_n though_o after_o a_o diverse_a manner_n and_o as_o touch_v original_a sin_n we_o also_o affirm_v that_o it_o go_v not_o before_o predestination_n or_o reprobation_n but_o of_o necessity_n follow_v it_o for_o that_o god_n will_v not_o produce_v man_n out_o of_o any_o other_o stock_n or_o matter_n but_o out_o of_o the_o progeny_n of_o adam_n by_o mean_n whereof_o we_o be_v all_o bear_v infect_v with_o the_o spot_n of_o corruption_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o this_o be_v not_o hide_v from_o god_n therefore_o augustine_n &_o we_o also_o with_o he_o say_v that_o god_n from_o everlasting_a purpose_v to_o have_v mercy_n on_o those_o who_o he_o love_v and_o not_o to_o have_v mercy_n on_o other_o who_o he_o love_v not_o so_o that_o if_o they_o which_o want_v that_o mercy_n which_o be_v bestow_v upon_o other_o do_v lead_v their_o life_n in_o original_a sin_n and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o age_n and_o to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n do_v add_v unto_o it_o many_o other_o sin_n then_o be_v they_o justly_o and_o worthy_o damn_v and_o this_o may_v effectual_o be_v say_v to_o repel_v those_o which_o peradventure_o presume_v to_o lay_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o damnation_n not_o upon_o their_o own_o fault_n but_o upon_o god_n wherefore_o original_a sin_n go_v before_o the_o birth_n of_o all_o man_n so_o that_o thou_o have_v a_o respect_n unto_o every_o particular_a man_n damnation_n original_a sin_n go_v before_o every_o man_n damnation_n it_o also_o go_v before_o the_o damnatition_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a although_o it_o can_v not_o be_v before_o the_o eternal_a purpose_n of_o god_n but_o only_o as_o touch_v foreknowledge_n 35_o these_o thing_n be_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v they_o as_o they_o be_v in_o no_o case_n absurd_a even_o so_o may_v they_o well_o be_v perceive_v if_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o sense_n how_o much_o in_o this_o place_n pighius_fw-la overpass_v pighius_fw-la a_o fond_a imagination_n of_o pighius_fw-la by_o mean_n of_o his_o own_o fond_a invention_n i_o will_v in_o few_o word_n touch_v he_o make_v many_o degree_n or_o act_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n which_o he_o order_v in_o themselves_o not_o by_o distinction_n of_o time_n but_o of_o nature_n and_o therefore_o such_o act_n he_o call_v sign_n and_o yet_o have_v he_o not_o that_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o borrow_v it_o out_o of_o scotus_n in_o the_o first_o sign_n say_v he_o god_n appoint_v to_o bring_v forth_o all_o man_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o they_o may_v have_v fruition_n of_o together_o with_o he_o and_o that_o without_o any_o difference_n and_o over_o they_o he_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o head_n who_o he_o think_v also_o shall_v have_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n although_o the_o first_o man_n have_v not_o sin_v in_o the_o second_o sign_n he_o say_v that_o god_n foresee_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n by_o reason_n whereof_o it_o be_v not_o now_o possible_a that_o man_n shall_v come_v unto_o salvation_n that_o be_v unto_o the_o end_n which_o god_n have_v purpose_v in_o himself_o when_o he_o decree_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o create_v man_n howbeit_o that_o the_o matter_n may_v go_v forward_o he_o say_v that_o god_n do_v put_v in_o the_o three_o sign_n remedy_n in_o christ_n namely_o of_o grace_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n &_o such_o like_a whereby_o may_v be_v holpen_v those_o which_o will_v receive_v they_o and_o those_o forsake_v which_o shall_v refuse_v they_o last_o in_o the_o four_o sign_n for_o that_o he_o foresee_v that_o many_o will_v embrace_v these_o aid_n and_o will_v use_v they_o well_o and_o effectual_o he_o therefore_o predestinate_v they_o to_o salvation_n but_o other_o who_o he_o see_v will_v reject_v these_o benefit_n of_o god_n he_o adjudge_v to_o utter_v destruction_n this_o he_o speak_v concern_v they_o that_o be_v of_o full_a age_n but_o forsomuch_o as_o by_o this_o fond_a imagination_n he_o can_v not_o satisfy_v as_o touch_v infant_n that_o perish_v before_o they_o can_v have_v the_o use_n of_o free_a will_n he_o patch_v thereunto_o another_o fable_n namely_o that_o they_o after_o the_o judgement_n shall_v be_v in_o this_o world_n happy_a with_o a_o certain_a natural_a blessedness_n wherein_o they_o shall_v continual_o praise_v god_n and_o give_v thanks_o unto_o he_o for_o that_o their_o estate_n so_o tolerable_a so_o this_o man_n feign_v a_o doctrine_n which_o he_o can_v not_o prove_v by_o any_o one_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o how_o attribute_v he_o unto_o god_n that_o he_o in_o the_o first_o sign_n decree_v those_o thing_n which_o shall_v not_o have_v success_n namely_o that_o all_o man_n shall_v enjoy_v felicity_n it_o be_v the_o point_n of_o a_o wise_a man_n i_o will_v not_o say_v of_o god_n success_n god_n apoint_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v have_v no_o success_n to_o decree_v or_o will_v those_o thing_n which_o shall_v take_v no_o effect_n let_v he_o also_o bring_v forth_o some_o oracle_n of_o god_n to_o declare_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v take_v upon_o he_o man_n flesh_n though_o man_n have_v not_o sin_v but_o he_o shall_v no_o where_n be_v able_a to_o show_v any_o such_o thing_n see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n every_o where_o testify_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v give_v for_o our_o redemption_n and_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o also_o may_v have_v teach_v he_o if_o he_o have_v consider_v that_o original_a sin_n go_v before_o all_o the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n creation_n only_o except_v see_v christ_n be_v to_o this_o end_n predestinate_v and_o give_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o remedy_n of_o our_o fall_n of_o all_o which_o fall_v original_a sin_n be_v the_o head_n and_o principal_n and_o he_o have_v not_o take_v upon_o he_o humane_a flesh_n commit_v christ_n have_v not_o come_v unless_o sin_n have_v be_v commit_v if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o sin_n commit_v he_o without_o the_o scripture_n also_o imagine_v that_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o power_n of_o our_o free_a will_n to_o receive_v the_o remedy_n be_v general_o set_v forth_o when_o as_o this_o be_v the_o most_o absolute_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o which_o he_o last_o of_o all_o bring_v namely_o of_o the_o natural_a felicity_n of_o child_n be_v not_o only_o avouch_v beside_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o be_v plain_o against_o it_o which_o teach_v mediator_n infant_n perish_v unless_o they_o be_v renew_v by_o the_o mediator_n that_o all_o perish_v in_o adam_n unless_o they_o be_v renew_v by_o the_o mediator_n but_o to_o perish_v or_o to_o die_v how_o repugnant_a it_o be_v with_o felicity_n all_o man_n easy_o understand_v and_o beside_o that_o he_o have_v not_o on_o his_o side_n one_o of_o all_o the_o father_n which_o dare_v imagine_v any_o such_o fond_a devise_n neither_o can_v i_o be_v persuade_v that_o pelagius_n himself_o if_o he_o be_v alive_a again_o will_v more_o diligent_o colour_v his_o opinion_n than_o this_o man_n have_v paint_v it_o and_o set_v it_o forth_o 36_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o prove_v touch_v predestination_n namely_o that_o it_o depend_v not_o of_o work_n foresee_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n also_o affirm_v we_o of_o reprobation_n for_o neither_o do_v it_o also_o depend_v of_o sin_n foresee_v so_o that_o by_o reprobation_n thou_o understand_v not_o extreme_a damnation_n but_o that_o most_o deep_a eternal_a purpose_n of_o god_n of_o not_o have_v mercy_n for_o paul_n write_v alike_o of_o esau_n and_o jacob_n 11._o rom._n 9_o 11._o before_o they_o have_v do_v any_o good_a or_o evil_n it_o be_v say_v the_o elder_a shall_v serve_v the_o young_a jacob_n have_v i_o love_v but_o esau_n have_v i_o hate_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v of_o work_n but_o of_o he_o that_o call_v and_o pighius_fw-la labour_v in_o vain_a to_o have_v this_o sentence_n of_o paul_n understand_v of_o one_o of_o they_o only_o see_v the_o apostle_n join_v they_o both_o together_o under_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o condition_n which_o he_o more_o manifest_o afterward_o declare_v say_v 18._o ibm._n ver_fw-la 18._o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v &_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v further_o elect_v if_o sin_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o reprobation_n none_o shall_v be_v elect_v if_o sin_n be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o reprobation_n then_o shall_v none_o be_v elect_v see_v god_n foreknow_v that_o all_o man_n be_v defile_v with_o it_o the_o very_a which_o thing_n augustine_n proove_v unto_o simplicianus_n 37_o but_o now_o we_o will_v entreat_v of_o the_o three_o article_n be_v what_o the_o effect_n of_o reprobation_n be_v to_o see_v what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n &_o of_o reprobation_n &_o we_o will_v be_v the_o bréefer_v
of_o righteousness_n take_v by_o itself_o yet_o can_v it_o by_o no_o mean_n be_v speak_v of_o we_o and_o of_o our_o righteousness_n wherefore_o see_v that_o sentence_n can_v neither_o edify_v nor_o make_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n i_o see_v not_o how_o paul_n can_v so_o have_v write_v howbeit_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v not_o contend_v with_o augustine_n more_o than_o be_v meet_v the_o three_o chapter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o certainty_n thereof_o and_o of_o the_o vice_n of_o fear_n and_o security_n which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o same_o also_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o our_o adoption_n and_o hope_v and_o union_n with_o christ_n now_o it_o shall_v be_v convenient_a to_o declare_v what_o faith_n be_v 22._o in_o rom._n 3_o verse_n 22._o i'faith_o therefore_o be_v a_o assent_n faith_n a_o definition_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o a_o firm_a assent_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n obtain_v not_o by_o reason_n or_o natural_a demonstration_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o speaker_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o definition_n disagré_v not_o from_o that_o which_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrews_n by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v 1._o verse_n 1._o about_o what_o thing_n faith_n be_v occupy_v namely_o about_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a what_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a ground_n be_v unto_o which_o all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n be_v refer_v and_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n have_v say_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o speaker_n can_v be_v of_o so_o much_o effect_n with_o we_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v unless_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v thereunto_o adjoin_v in_o greek_a it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n be_v derive_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o we_o be_v not_o accustom_v to_o believe_v unless_o it_o be_v in_o that_o thing_n whereof_o we_o be_v full_o persuade_v basil_n as_o touch_v faith_n when_o he_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n 10_o psal_n 116_o 10_o i_o have_v love_v and_o therefore_o have_v i_o speak_v write_v thus_o do_v not_o contend_v to_o see_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o far_o off_o neither_o make_v those_o thing_n doubtful_a which_o be_v hope_v for_o of_o two_o break_v neck_n or_o downefals_a to_o be_v take_v heed_n of_o in_o which_o word_n he_o show_v that_o two_o principal_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v the_o one_o be_v that_o we_o be_v not_o with_o too_o much_o curiosity_n stir_v up_o to_o seek_v out_o the_o proof_n of_o thing_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v which_o proof_n so_o long_o as_o we_o live_v here_o can_v be_v have_v the_o other_o be_v that_o although_o they_o be_v obscure_a yet_o we_o shall_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o and_o the_o same_o writer_n entreat_v of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n say_v on_o this_o wise_a 5._o basil_n say_v that_o they_o swerve_v from_o faith_n which_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o scripture_n john_n 10_o vers_n 4._o &_o 5._o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a fall_v away_o from_o faith_n and_o a_o point_n of_o pride_n either_o to_o refuse_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v or_o to_o bring_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o write_v forsomuch_o as_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n &_o before_o that_o he_o say_v but_o a_o stranger_n they_o will_v not_o follow_v but_o will_v flee_v from_o he_o because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v his_o voice_n the_o apostle_n also_o have_v by_o another_o humane_a example_n straitlie_o forbid_v either_o to_o add_v or_o to_o diminish_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o he_o say_v 15._o gala._n 3_o 15._o and_o yet_o no_o man_n dissanul_v the_o testament_n of_o man_n when_o it_o be_v confirm_v neither_o add_v any_o thing_n thereunto_o in_o which_o place_n a_o man_n may_v perceive_v how_o wary_o this_o writer_n affirm_v that_o as_o touch_v faith_n nothing_o ought_v either_o to_o be_v add_v or_o diminish_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o thing_n make_v chéefelie_o against_o they_o that_o obtrude_v invention_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n as_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v beléeve_v further_o the_o same_o writer_n plain_o set_v forth_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o declare_v the_o property_n thereof_o in_o his_o moral_n the_o eighty_o sum_n &_o 22._o chapter_n where_o he_o say_v what_o be_v the_o property_n of_o faith_n he_o answer_v and_o unseparable_a certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o attein_v to_o by_o any_o kind_n of_o reason_v or_o bring_v in_o through_o any_o natural_a necessity_n nor_o be_v frame_v to_o any_o piety_n can_v ever_o be_v shake_v off_o and_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o one_o that_o beléeve_v in_o such_o a_o certainty_n to_o be_v affect_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n speak_v and_o not_o to_o presume_v either_o to_o disannul_v or_o to_o add_v any_o thing_n 23._o rom._n 14_o 23._o for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v and_o faith_n come_v of_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 17._o rom._n 10_o 17._o then_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n inspire_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o same_o be_v sin_n this_o father_n together_o with_o we_o confirm_v the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o show_v whereupon_o the_o same_o depend_v when_o he_o call_v it_o unseparable_a because_o when_o we_o believe_v we_o do_v not_o examine_v by_o our_o own_o reason_n what_o be_v possible_a or_o not_o possible_a to_o be_v do_v and_o he_o seem_v to_o allude_v to_o those_o word_n which_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n 20._o rom._n 4_o 20._o that_o he_o waver_v not_o through_o unbelief_n where_o he_o use_v this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wherefore_o let_v certainty_n be_v the_o contrary_a thing_n unto_o doubt_v which_o happen_v through_o inquisitivenes_n or_o examination_n of_o man_n reason_n moreover_o suspicion_n basil_n say_v that_o be_v sin_n which_o be_v without_o faith_n &_o the_o scripture_n rom._n 14_o 23._o note_v how_o basil_n understand_v this_o text_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n faith_n differ_v from_o opinion_n and_o suspicion_n that_o which_o he_o in_o another_o sentence_n have_v speak_v he_o plain_o repeat_v again_o namely_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v without_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v beléeve_v and_o this_o place_n of_o paul_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n he_o use_v in_o his_o natural_a and_o proper_a sense_n as_o we_o also_o use_v it_o which_o thing_n our_o adversary_n can_v abide_v faith_n differ_v from_o opinion_n for_o opinion_n although_o it_o make_v we_o lean_a unto_o one_o part_n yet_o it_o do_v the_o same_o both_o with_o reason_n and_o also_o not_o without_o fear_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o part_n and_o suspicion_n do_v yet_o engender_v a_o weak_a assent_n than_o opinion_n do_v because_o it_o be_v both_o destitute_a of_o reason_n and_o also_o it_o leave_v man_n doubtful_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o part_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o science_n engender_v a_o firm_a assent_n but_o that_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o add_v of_o demonstration_n forsomuch_o as_o we_o now_o see_v plain_o as_o well_o what_o faith_n be_v as_o also_o how_o it_o differ_v from_o opinion_n science_n and_o suspicion_n let_v we_o see_v how_o many_o way_n faith_n be_v take_v take_v how_o many_o way_n faith_n be_v take_v for_o there_o be_v one_o kind_a of_o faith_n that_o be_v mighty_a perfect_a and_o of_o efficacy_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v but_o there_o be_v another_o which_o be_v void_a &_o without_o fruit_n and_o the_o same_o be_v vain_a and_o during_o but_o for_o a_o time_n bring_v not_o justification_n which_o thing_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o seed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 19_o mat._n 13_o 19_o fall_v sometime_o upon_o good_a ground_n and_o sometime_o upon_o stony_a ground_n upon_o thorn_n and_o by_o the_o high_a way_n side_n where_o it_o be_v lose_v &_o bring_v forth_o no_o fruit_n again_o alike_o justifieng_v faith_n be_v not_o in_o all_o alike_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a be_v not_o in_o all_o man_n alike_o for_o it_o have_v degree_n according_a to_o the_o great_a or_o less_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n wherefore_o paul_n say_v 3._o rom._n 12_o 3._o even_o as_o god_n have_v divide_v unto_o every_o man_n the_o
our_o mind_n for_o thus_o it_o be_v write_v why_o be_v thou_o so_o heavy_a o_o my_o soul_n 12._o psal_n 42_o 12._o why_o be_v thou_o so_o discourage_v hope_v in_o god_n for_o i_o will_v yet_o make_v my_o confession_n unto_o he_o my_o safety_n be_v in_o his_o countenance_n aid_n why_o god_n disappoint_v we_o of_o the_o outward_a aid_n neither_o do_v god_n common_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n disappoint_v his_o people_n of_o the_o outward_a aid_n and_o help_v of_o this_o world_n but_o to_o gather_v their_o scatter_a hope_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v it_o to_o lean_v unto_o too_o many_o aid_n and_o these_o sundry_a and_o manifold_a aid_n he_o change_v for_o one_o principal_a aid_n and_o the_o same_o most_o firm_a to_o the_o end_n we_o shall_v depend_v upon_o he_o by_o this_o difference_n of_o a_o firm_a hope_n the_o christian_n do_v much_o differ_v from_o the_o epicure_n and_o ethnik_n ethnik_n a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o of_o the_o ethnik_n for_o the_o ethnik_n if_o there_o come_v any_o great_a calamity_n to_o they_o straitwaie_o they_o exclaim_v and_o cry_v out_o if_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o have_v a_o care_n of_o these_o thing_n if_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o see_v these_o thing_n so_o they_o call_v not_o upon_o god_n but_o be_v in_o despair_n utterlie_o discourage_v themselves_o but_o contrariwise_o godly_a man_n most_o constant_o cry_v unto_o god_n neither_o doubt_n they_o but_o that_o their_o prayer_n reach_v up_o even_o unto_o heaven_n and_o that_o god_n have_v a_o care_n both_o over_o they_o and_o also_o over_o all_o that_o they_o have_v the_o four_o chapter_n of_o justification_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 11._o chapter_n this_o place_n be_v also_o treat_v of_o upon_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o cor._n 1._o about_o the_o end_n and_o upon_o genesis_n 15._o verse_n 6._o it_o shall_v now_o be_v a_o profitable_a thing_n to_o entreat_v of_o justification_n which_o be_v the_o scope_n and_o end_n of_o all_o that_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n let_v this_o question_n be_v put_v forth_o after_o this_o sort_n namely_o whether_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n or_o by_o faith_n faith_n the_o question_n be_v put_v faith_n but_o first_o of_o all_o it_o shall_v be_v good_a to_o discuss_v the_o word_n of_o the_o question_n propose_v and_o we_o will_v begin_v with_o this_o word_n justification_n this_o verb_n tsadac_n justify_v the_o signification_n ●f_o this_o word_n to_o justify_v with_o the_o hebrews_n in_o the_o first_o conjugation_n signify_v to_o be_v just_a but_o if_o it_o be_v transfer_v unto_o the_o three_o conjugation_n it_o signify_v to_o transfer_v righteousness_n into_o a_o other_o and_o to_o make_v just_a for_o this_o be_v the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o form_n of_o those_o verb_n which_o they_o call_v hiphil_fw-la even_o as_o amad_a signify_v to_o stand_v so_o heemid_n signify_v to_o appoint_v that_o be_v to_o make_v a_o other_o thing_n to_o stand_v wherefore_o hitsdic_n in_o the_o hebrew_n signify_v to_o justify_v that_o be_v to_o make_v one_o just_a which_o thing_n when_o it_o be_v do_v of_o god_n justify_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n god_n be_v say_v to_o justify_v it_o be_v do_v of_o he_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n for_o sometime_o he_o do_v assure_o bring_v forth_o righteousness_n in_o man_n first_o when_o god_n with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n frame_v they_o again_o &_o whole_o renew_v they_o in_o restore_v the_o strength_n of_o their_o mind_n &_o deliver_v the_o power_n of_o man_n from_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o natural_a corruption_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o righteousness_n which_o stick_v &_o cleave_v to_o our_o mind_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n secondlie_o when_o he_o have_v so_o restore_v and_o make_v they_o new_a again_o he_o give_v just_a and_o holy_a work_n by_o the_o use_n and_o continuance_n of_o which_o work_v a_o quality_n or_o as_o they_o call_v it_o a_o habit_n be_v engender_v in_o our_o mind_n whereby_o we_o be_v make_v pliant_a to_o live_v honest_o and_o godly_a and_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o this_o kind_n of_o righteousness_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o regenerate_v but_o sometime_o god_n justifi_v in_o absolve_a we_o from_o sin_n and_o ascribe_v and_o impute_v righteousness_n and_o then_o this_o word_n hitsdic_n be_v a_o word_n take_v of_o the_o law_n which_o pertain_v to_o judgement_n as_o also_o this_o word_n h●…schiah_n which_o signify_v to_o declare_v one_o to_o be_v a_o offender_n &_o a_o wicked_a person_n and_o to_o justify_v in_o judgement_n be_v by_o word_n testimony_n and_o affirmation_n to_o count_v one_o for_o just_a and_o forsomuch_o as_o these_o be_v the_o two_o signification_n of_o this_o word_n to_o justify_v namely_o either_o in_o deed_n or_o in_o account_n and_o estimation_n and_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o either_o of_o they_o whether_o of_o these_o two_o shall_v we_o follow_v in_o the_o disputation_n propose_v forsooth_o the_o latter_a iustifieng_v we_o now_o entreat_v of_o the_o latter_a fo●me_n of_o iustifieng_v and_o that_o for_o because_o the_o renovation_n inspire_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o our_o righteousness_n as_o touch_v the_o habit_n get_v by_o good_a work_n be_v while_o we_o live_v here_o so_o unperfect_a and_o maim_a that_o if_o judgement_n shall_v be_v give_v by_o they_o we_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n beside_o that_o paul_n dispute_v of_o this_o matter_n 3._o rom._n 4_o 3._o after_o he_o have_v bring_v forth_o the_o authority_n of_o david_n and_o a_o testimony_n of_o the_o history_n of_o abraham_n in_o genesis_n use_v this_o word_n of_o impute_v and_o by_o the_o proper_a signification_n thereof_o he_o reason_v touch_v this_o present_a cause_n or_o question_n and_o this_o i_o suppose_v to_o be_v sufficient_a as_o touch_v the_o declaration_n of_o the_o first_o word_n namely_o justification_n 2_o now_o let_v we_o entreat_v of_o faith_n aman_n among_o the_o hebrews_n in_o the_o first_o conjugation_n signify_v signify_v what_o this_o word_n faith_n signify_v to_o be_v firm_a the_o very_a which_o verb_n in_o the_o three_o conjugation_n be_v call_v as_o i_o have_v say_v hiphil_fw-la signify_v to_o give_v constancy_n and_o assurednes_n to_o any_o promise_n or_o thing_n wherefore_o the_o latin_n say_v fidem_fw-la homini_fw-la aut_fw-la verbis_fw-la tribu●re_fw-la which_o be_v in_o english_a to_o give_v faith_n or_o credit_n unto_o a_o man_n or_o unto_o word_n and_o it_o signify_v even_o as_o much_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v to_o believe_v wherefore_o this_o hebrew_n verb_n heemin_n signify_v none_o other_o thing_n than_o to_o suppose_v or_o think_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v firm_a constant_a and_o true_a and_o as_o touch_v god_n he_o which_o beléeve_v not_o he_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n for_o john_n say_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n the_o 5._o chapter_n he_o which_o believe_v not_o god_n 10_o verse_n 10_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n which_o thing_n how_o gréevous_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v let_v every_o man_n consider_v with_o himself_o contrariwise_o he_o which_o beléeve_v god_n adorn_v he_o with_o glory_n &_o honour_n 20._o rom._n 4_o 20._o for_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v of_o abraham_n that_o he_o stagger_v not_o through_o doubt_v through_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o own_o body_n or_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o sara_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n past_o child_n bear_v but_o give_v the_o glory_n unto_o god_n be_v strong_a in_o faith_n justify_v a_o analogy_n between_o the_o two_o word_n to_o believe_v and_o to_o justify_v and_o full_o persuade_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v wherefore_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o certain_a analogy_n or_o proportion_n between_o this_o word_n to_o believe_v and_o that_o to_o justify_v as_o we_o in_o this_o place_n take_v it_o for_o as_o to_o justify_v be_v by_o way_n of_o judge_v &_o account_v to_o ascribe_v righteousness_n to_o a_o man_n and_o not_o to_o make_v he_o to_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n just_a so_o to_o believe_v be_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n to_o make_v the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o any_o man_n sure_a and_o firm_a but_o to_o think_v and_o determine_v with_o ourselves_o that_o so_o they_o be_v but_o this_o act_n of_o beléeve_v whereof_o we_o now_o entreat_v have_v two_o manner_n of_o firmness_n and_o certainty_n first_o of_o the_o thing_n namely_o of_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n which_o abide_v much_o more_o firmlie_o than_o heaven_n and_o earth_n faith_n a_o double_a certainty_n of_o faith_n secondlie_o as_o touch_v the_o persuasion_n itself_o which_o see_v it_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n it_o be_v also_o
most_o firm_a most_o certain_a and_o of_o assure_a persuasion_n that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v never_o naked_a but_o always_o draw_v with_o it_o many_o and_o sundry_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n mind_n a_o assure_a persuasion_n be_v not_o naked_a but_o draw_v with_o it_o other_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o experience_n &_o daily_a use_n teach_v that_o in_o thing_n civil_a a_o man_n be_v well_o and_o full_o persuade_v of_o pleasant_a promise_n be_v fill_v with_o confidence_n reioise_v show_v a_o merry_a countenance_n be_v glad_a and_o pleasant_a and_o cleave_v unto_o he_o that_o make_v the_o promise_n that_o he_o may_v by_o all_o mean_n allow_v he_o but_o contrariwise_o when_o he_o beléeve_v not_o the_o persuasion_n he_o laugh_v at_o it_o neglect_v and_o contemn_v it_o or_o wax_v cold_a and_o bend_v the_o brow_n wherefore_o it_o can_v never_o be_v that_o he_o which_o beléeve_v in_o very_a deed_n can_v want_v such_o affection_n which_o be_v accustom_v to_o follow_v a_o full_a and_o strong_a persuasion_n and_o therefore_o those_o that_o be_v the_o pure_a professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v justly_o affirm_v that_o to_o believe_v have_v a_o very_a great_a conjunction_n with_o the_o action_n confidence_n unto_o faith_n be_v join_v a_o assure_a confidence_n or_o with_o the_o motion_n of_o confidence_n hope_v and_o such_o like_a affection_n but_o most_o of_o all_o with_o the_o sincere_a and_o firm_a affiance_n which_o the_o same_o always_o draw_v with_o it_o whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n promise_n be_v make_v both_o to_o faith_n and_o to_o trust_v 7._o hab_z 2_o 4._o psal_n 22_o 5._o promise_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n give_v both_o unto_o faith_n and_o unto_o confidence_n rom._n 8_o 37._o esai_n 28_o 16._o john_n 3_o 36._o rom._n 3_o 28._o psal_n 2_o 12._o esai_n 26_o 3._o rom._n 5_o 5._o titus_n 3_o 7._o for_o even_o as_o it_o be_v say_v the_o just_a man_n live_v by_o faith_n also_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v confound_v and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o which_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v eternal_a life_n again_o we_o think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n even_o so_o be_v it_o write_v in_o the_o psalm_n bless_v be_v all_o they_o which_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o in_o esaie_n the._n 26._o chapter_n he_o shall_v keep_v peace_n because_o they_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n hope_n confound_v not_o to_o titus_n also_o the_o .3_o chapter_n that_o we_o may_v be_v heir_n according_a to_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n although_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n we_o do_v find_v the_o promise_n be_v often_o make_v unto_o hope_n than_o unto_o faith_n yet_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v contrariwise_o faith_n why_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v often_o express_a hope_n and_o trust_v and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n faith_n the_o reason_n whereof_o may_v be_v this_o because_o in_o the_o old_a time_n the_o hebrews_n err_v not_o in_o beléeve_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n nay_o rather_o they_o profess_v the_o worship_v of_o he_o only_o but_o this_o be_v not_o well_o among_o they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o a_o livelie_a faith_n which_o draw_v with_o it_o a_o trust_n otherwise_o they_o have_v by_o education_n conceive_v either_o a_o certain_a opinion_n or_o else_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n and_o therefore_o unto_o this_o the_o scripture_n exhort_v they_o to_o believe_v true_o and_o effectual_o which_o be_v express_v by_o the_o effect_n under_o the_o name_n of_o trust_n but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o err_v in_o the_o meaning_n both_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v worshipper_n of_o idol_n and_o of_o many_o god_n and_o also_o the_o jew_n as_o touch_v the_o condition_n of_o messiah_n for_o they_o look_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o glorious_a pomp_n like_o a_o king_n and_o magnifical_a in_o worldly_a empire_n wherefore_o faith_n be_v oftentimes_o beat_v into_o they_o whereby_o they_o may_v obtain_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v very_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v right_o be_v instruct_v of_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v 3_o and_o of_o this_o hebrew_n verb_n aman_n be_v derive_v this_o noun_n emunah_n which_o signify_v faith_n 3._o i'faith_o sometime_o signify_v a_o constancy_n in_o word_n and_o promise_n 1._o cor._n 1_o 9_o 10_o 13._o &_o 1_o cor._n 1_o 18._o 1._o thes_n 5_o 24_o psa_n 111_o 7._o rom._n 3_o 3._o and_o it_o sometime_o signify_v certainty_n and_o constancy_n of_o word_n and_o promise_n wherefore_o god_n be_v oftentimes_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n call_v faithful_a and_o his_o work_n be_v call_v faithful_a because_o they_o be_v firm_a and_o do_v constant_o continue_v and_o we_o read_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n what_o if_o some_o of_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v have_v their_o incredulity_n make_v vain_a the_o faith_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o this_o latin_a word_n fides_n that_o be_v faith_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v cicero_n be_v derive_v of_o fio_n because_o that_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o deed_n which_o be_v speak_v and_o sometime_o it_o signify_v the_o assent_n of_o our_o mind_n whereby_o we_o receive_v word_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o abraham_n he_o believe_v god_n 6._o gen._n 15_o 6._o and_o it_o be_v impute_v unto_o he_o for_o righteousness_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o in_o this_o discourse_n faith_n how_o faith_n be_v take_v in_o this_o discourse_n the_o definition_n of_o faith_n we_o take_v faith_n now_o after_o this_o manner_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v from_o the_o purpose_n to_o define_v what_o faith_n be_v wherefore_o faith_n be_v a_o firm_a and_o a_o assure_a assent_n of_o the_o mind_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o assent_n be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o beléever_n and_o therefore_o it_o consist_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o be_v occupy_v about_o the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o whence_o we_o have_v the_o matter_n thereof_o of_o the_o form_n also_o we_o need_v not_o to_o doubt_v because_o it_o be_v define_v to_o be_v a_o assent_n the_o efficient_a cause_n be_v set_v down_o to_o be_v the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o end_n be_v declare_v in_o the_o last_o place_n when_o as_o we_o say_v that_o this_o assent_n be_v inspire_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o beléever_n not_o much_o unlike_a unto_o this_o definition_n be_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v concern_v faith_n in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o hebrews_n the_o .11_o chapter_n declare_v hebr._n 11_o 1._o the_o definition_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o .11_o to_o the_o hebrews_n be_v declare_v namely_o that_o faith_n be_v a_o substance_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o a_o argument_n of_o thing_n that_o appear_v not_o where_o that_o which_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n have_v turn_v substantia_fw-la that_o be_v substance_n in_o greek_a be_v write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n budaeus_fw-la most_o learned_o turn_v in_o his_o commentary_n boldness_n strength_n or_o valiantness_n of_o mind_n signify_v what_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v and_o it_o be_v derive_v of_o this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v to_o sustain_v to_o receive_v not_o to_o give_v place_n unto_o one_o that_o rush_v upon_o a_o man_n hereof_o a_o soldier_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v trusty_n and_o turn_v not_o his_o back_n unto_o his_o enemy_n but_o go_v against_o they_o and_o resist_v they_o strength_n in_o believe_v we_o have_v need_n of_o strength_n and_o undoutedlie_o in_o beléeve_v we_o have_v need_n of_o this_o strength_n &_o patience_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a fight_n of_o which_o we_o have_v there_o experience_n for_o we_o must_v resist_v the_o flesh_n we_o must_v overcome_v reason_n which_o very_o much_o strive_v against_o faith_n we_o must_v also_o resist_v the_o condemnation_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n sin_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n beside_o by_o which_o a_o faithful_a assent_n be_v both_o let_v and_o assault_v now_o this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o substance_n and_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v hope_v for_o be_v very_o well_o compare_v together_o between_o themselves_o for_o god_n promise_v resurrection_n but_o yet_o unto_o the_o dead_a he_o promise_v eternal_a life_n but_o yet_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v rot_v he_o call_v they_o bless_v but_o yet_o those_o which_o abundantlie_o thirst_v and_o hunger_n and_o be_v on_o every_o side_n oppress_v he_o pronounce_v man_n to_o be_v justify_v but_o yet_o such_o as_o be_v cover_v with_o
also_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n unto_o monk_n cowl_n to_o candle_n and_o the_o ash_n of_o the_o bough_n of_o the_o olive_n tree_n and_o the_o palm_n tree_n and_o unto_o pilgrimage_n wherefore_o they_o proceed_v unto_o such_o fond_a and_o ungodlie_a trifle_n by_o mean_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o so_o perverselie_o interpret_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v merit_n undoubted_o none_o understand_v but_o they_o which_o have_v experience_n how_o hard_o a_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o a_o hart_n bruise_a overthrow_v and_o lade_v with_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n shall_v when_o it_o be_v grieve_v and_o oppress_v quiet_a itself_o in_o the_o free_a promise_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n god_n it_o be_v a_o very_a difficult_a thing_n to_o rest_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o such_o a_o hart_n earnest_o labour_v that_o once_o at_o the_o length_n it_o may_v with_o a_o firm_a faith_n be_v establish_v if_o we_o shall_v with_o the_o sophister_n will_v a_o man_n to_o have_v a_o respect_n unto_o his_o work_n then_o shall_v he_o never_o be_v in_o quiet_a but_o shall_v always_o be_v vex_v and_o always_o doubt_v of_o his_o salvation_n and_o at_o the_o last_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o desperation_n i_o will_v not_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o when_o we_o reason_n of_o this_o matter_n we_o take_v in_o hand_n a_o vain_a thing_n or_o a_o strife_n about_o word_n disputation_n the_o fruit_n and_o end_n of_o this_o disputation_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n whereby_o be_v defend_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a unto_o himself_o only_o namely_o to_o justify_v and_o to_o forgive_v sin_n we_o seek_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v in_o no_o case_n be_v attribute_v unto_o work_n or_o to_o any_o other_o thing_n else_o of_o we_o we_o seek_v that_o the_o promise_n shall_v be_v firm_a and_o that_o afflict_a conscience_n shall_v receive_v consolation_n in_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n last_o we_o seek_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o law_n and_o the_o law_n from_o the_o gospel_n but_o this_o can_v they_o do_v which_o ascribe_v justification_n to_o work_n and_o confound_v and_o perniciouslie_o mingle_v they_o together_o and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o proposition_n although_o i_o can_v bring_v a_o great_a many_o more_o reason_n &_o in_o a_o manner_n infinite_a yet_o these_o which_o i_o have_v already_o bring_v shall_v suffice_v and_o i_o will_v omit_v the_o rest_n for_o they_o which_o be_v not_o move_v with_o these_o reason_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v touch_v with_o any_o other_o 19_o howbeit_o i_o think_v it_o not_o good_a to_o pass_v over_o with_o silence_n the_o trifle_a shift_n and_o wily_a deceit_n whereby_o the_o sophister_n use_v to_o avoid_v and_o obscure_v this_o doctrine_n which_o we_o have_v now_o put_v forth_o ceremony_n whether_o justification_n he_o deny_v to_o be_v only_o as_o touch_v the_o ceremony_n first_o they_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o often_o as_o they_o take_v away_o the_o power_n of_o iustifieng_v from_o work_n do_v that_o only_a as_o touch_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o not_o as_o touch_v just_a and_o upright_o work_v which_o common_o they_o do_v call_v moral_a work_n in_o which_o thing_n how_o much_o man_n be_v deceive_v even_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o especial_o of_o paul_n who_o they_o affirm_v to_o be_v most_o of_o all_o on_o their_o side_n as_o touch_v that_o matter_n will_v most_o plain_o declare_v for_o although_o this_o apostle_n speak_v of_o many_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o perteine_v both_o to_o the_o rite_n and_o also_o to_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o in_o his_o declaration_n he_o write_v a_o great_a many_o mo_z other_o thing_n &c_n testimony_n of_o paul_n whereby_o be_v prove_v that_o moral_a work_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o power_n of_o iustifieng_v ro._n 1_o 23._o &c_n &c_n whereby_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o ceremony_n but_o also_o even_o of_o the_o other_o law_n of_o righteousness_n and_o goodness_n yea_o rather_o altogether_o of_o those_o which_o perteine_a to_o manner_n and_o even_o unto_o the_o table_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o in_o the_o .1_o chapter_n when_o he_o reprove_v the_o gentile_n that_o without_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n they_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v he_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n their_o work_n namely_o idolatry_n and_o shameful_a lust_n and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n he_o rehearse_v a_o very_a long_a cate-log_n of_o vice_n wherewith_o they_o be_v infect_v neither_o speak_v he_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n wherefore_o forsomuch_o as_o those_o vice_n which_o he_o there_o mention_v be_v against_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o the_o moral_a law_n we_o can_v not_o think_v but_o of_o that_o also_o he_o understand_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v and_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o reprove_v the_o jew_n for_o the_o like_a kind_n of_o sin_n 21_o vers_fw-la 21_o for_o he_o say_v thou_o which_o teach_v a_o other_o do_v thou_o not_o teach_v thyself_o thou_o which_o teach_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o steal_v do_v thou_o steal_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n aft_v a_o fornicatour_n yea_o and_o thou_o which_o dete_a idol_n do_v rob_v god_n of_o his_o honour_n who_o see_v not_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n he_o yet_o more_o manifest_o intreat_v of_o the_o same_o when_o he_o write_v etc._n vers_fw-la 11_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v none_o just_a there_o be_v none_o that_o understand_v or_o inquire_v after_o god_n all_o have_v decline_v and_o be_v together_o make_v unprofitable_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o these_o thing_n we_o see_v be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o perteine_a unto_o manner_n if_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v speak_v only_o of_o ceremonial_a law_n he_o will_v never_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o be_v also_o more_o evident_o gather_v that_o when_o he_o have_v say_v 20_o rom._n 3_o 20_o no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n he_o add_v for_o by_o the_o law_n come_v the_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n wherefore_o that_o law_n whereby_o we_o know_v sin_n justifi_v not_o according_a to_o which_o meaning_n he_o say_v also_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n the_o law_n work_v wrath_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o it_o shall_v justify_v 15._o rom._n 4_o 15._o but_o it_o be_v very_o manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n that_o sin_n be_v better_o perceive_v and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o transgressor_n more_o provoke_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n than_o through_o the_o precept_n of_o ceremony_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v also_o of_o that_o general_a sentence_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n that_o unto_o he_o which_o work_v 4._o vers_fw-la 4._o a_o reward_n be_v not_o impute_v according_a unto_o grace_n but_o according_a to_o debt_n and_o also_o that_o god_n will_v have_v the_o inheritance_n to_o consist_v of_o grace_n that_o the_o promise_n shall_v abide_v firm_a and_o not_o be_v change_v that_o our_o glorieng_n may_v be_v exclude_v which_o glorieng_v come_v no_o less_o of_o good_a work_n moral_a than_o of_o ceremony_n it_o be_v write_v also_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n that_o the_o law_n enter_v in_o 20._o rom._n 5_o 20._o that_o sin_n may_v abound_v and_o where_o sin_n have_v abound_v there_o also_o have_v grace_n more_o abound_v these_o thing_n also_o can_v not_o be_v draw_v unto_o ceremony_n only_o moreover_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n 1._o rom._n 6_o 1._o when_o it_o be_v object_v unto_o he_o that_o by_o so_o depress_v the_o work_n and_o the_o law_n he_o do_v seem_v to_o open_v a_o gate_n unto_o loose_a life_n and_o unto_o slothfulness_n and_o unto_o sin_n as_o now_o daily_o they_o object_n unto_o we_o he_o answer_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o abide_v in_o sin_n forsomuch_o as_o we_o be_v now_o dead_a unto_o it_o by_o baptism_n say_v he_o we_o be_v bury_v with_o christ_n that_o even_o as_o he_o die_v and_z rise_v again_o so_o likewise_o shall_v we_o walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o he_o admonish_v we_o that_o even_o as_o christ_n die_v once_o and_o die_v no_o more_o so_o also_o we_o shall_v esteem_v ourselves_o dead_a to_o sin_n but_o live_v unto_o god_n and_o he_o add_v that_o we_o must_v have_v a_o diligent_a care_n that_o sin_n reign_v not_o in_o our_o mortal_a body_n and_o that_o we_o give_v not_o our_o member_n the_o weapon_n of_o iniquity_n unto_o sin_n but_o give_v over_o ourselves_o unto_o god_n as_o of_o dead_a
manner_n that_o we_o shall_v weep_v for_o the_o sin_n already_o commit_v and_o we_o shall_v take_v heed_n we_o do_v not_o the_o same_o again_o and_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n the_o twelve_o homily_n complain_v chrysost_n chrysost_n that_o the_o christian_n abuse_a tear_n tear_n the_o abuse_n of_o tear_n and_o that_o whereas_o otherwise_o they_o be_v good_a creature_n of_o god_n they_o diffame_v they_o in_o that_o they_o use_v they_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o deserve_v no_o weep_v sin_n only_o say_v he_o must_v be_v weep_v for_o not_o only_o our_o own_o sin_n 20_o we_o must_v bewail_v the_o sin_n both_o of_o ourselves_o and_o of_o other_o 2._o co._n 12._o 20_o but_o other_o man_n sin_n also_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n paul_n perform_v who_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v that_o he_o be_v afraid_a that_o he_o shall_v not_o come_v unto_o they_o but_o so_o as_o he_o be_v pensive_a &_o compel_v to_o weep_v for_o very_a many_o which_o be_v fall_v have_v not_o repent_v yea_o and_o he_o exhort_v the_o same_o corinthian_n to_o weep_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o when_o in_o his_o epistle_n he_o say_v you_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o have_v not_o mourn_v 2._o 1._o cor._n 5_o 2._o namely_o for_o a_o gréevous_a crime_n of_o a_o incestuous_a man_n and_o david_n in_o his_o 119._o psalm_n write_v 136._o verse_n 136._o my_o eye_n have_v bring_v forth_o river_n of_o water_n because_o they_o have_v not_o keep_v thy_o law_n that_o most_o holy_a prophet_n weep_v because_o of_o the_o public_a transgression_n of_o the_o law_n and_o when_o as_o he_o see_v those_o transgression_n every_o where_o commit_v he_o pour_v forth_o abundance_n of_o tear_n 4._o ezech._n 9_o 4._o and_o ezechiel_n in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n commend_v some_o which_o weep_v for_o the_o wicked_a act_n of_o other_o man_n and_o hereof_o it_o come_v laugh_v the_o godly_a do_v easy_o weep_v than_o laugh_v that_o when_o holy_a man_n see_v horrible_a spectacle_n of_o sin_n to_o happen_v often_o they_o do_v more_o easy_o break_v forth_o into_o tear_n than_o into_o laughter_n for_o so_o christ_n use_v to_o do_v who_o we_o read_v to_o have_v oftentimes_o weep_v but_o we_o never_o read_v that_o he_o laugh_v the_o very_a which_o thing_n we_o also_o must_v do_v at_o this_o day_n see_v so_o evil_a a_o harvest_n of_o sin_n do_v every_o where_n show_v itself_o 4_o final_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o all_o kind_n of_o mourn_v be_v not_o allow_v by_o god_n for_o there_o be_v some_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o which_o be_v only_o move_v with_o the_o feel_v of_o punishment_n neither_o do_v they_o procee_v any_o further_a in_o deed_n the_o sorrow_n for_o pain_n and_o punishment_n sake_n be_v a_o certain_a degree_n unto_o true_a repentance_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n god_n both_o punish_v and_o threaten_v man_n 5._o the_o weep_v which_o come_v only_o through_o the_o feel_v of_o punishment_n be_v not_o allow_v verse_n 5._o while_o they_o live_v here_o howbeit_o this_o sorrow_n be_v not_o sufficient_a neither_o be_v it_o by_o itself_o allow_v of_o god_n for_o it_o spring_v of_o self-love_n and_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n a_o thing_n unprofitable_a unless_o it_o go_v further_o wherefore_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o zacharie_n the_o seven_o chapter_n that_o the_o hebrews_n have_v fast_v for_o themselves_o &_o not_o for_o his_o glory_n so_o these_o weep_v and_o mourn_v for_o themselves_o and_o not_o because_o they_o have_v violate_v the_o commandment_n of_o god._n condemn_v the_o tear_n of_o they_o which_o speak_v evil_a of_o god_n be_v condemn_v moreover_o thou_o may_v see_v some_o other_o somewhat_o worse_a than_o these_o which_o be_v move_v with_o the_o sorrow_n of_o trouble_n do_v in_o their_o weep_a and_o among_o their_o tear_n speak_v evil_a of_o god_n himself_o be_v angry_a at_o his_o justice_n as_o though_o he_o be_v too_o severe_a and_o a_o hard_a lord_n than_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o such_o mourn_n belong_v not_o to_o repentance_n but_o rather_o to_o despair_v a_o example_n thereof_o we_o have_v in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n 2._o num._n 14_o 2._o the_o 14._o chapter_n where_o the_o people_n hear_v the_o bitter_a relation_n of_o the_o spy_n fall_v to_o weep_v and_o speak_v evil_a both_o against_o moses_n and_o against_o god_n and_o determine_v to_o turn_v into_o egypt_n god_n what_o kind_n of_o mourn_v be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n the_o three_o kind_n of_o mourn_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o that_o be_v when_o we_o be_v gréevouslie_o sorry_a because_o we_o have_v violate_v his_o law_n and_o because_o we_o see_v a_o great_a number_n of_o other_o resist_v his_o most_o holy_a will_n to_o this_o kind_n of_o lamentation_n do_v joel_n 17._o joel._n 2_o 16._o and_o 17._o and_o other_o holy_a prophet_n stir_v up_o the_o people_n of_o the_o hebrews_n christ_n also_o persuade_v we_o unto_o they_o 4._o matt._n 5_o 4._o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v bless_v which_o mourn_v because_o consolation_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o they_o the_o church_n also_o use_v sometime_o to_o stir_v up_o the_o people_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o moorning_n renew_v public_a repentance_n must_v sometime_o be_v renew_v when_o as_o sometime_o public_o it_o renew_v repentance_n which_o although_o it_o ought_v continual_o to_o cleave_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n yet_o by_o reason_n of_o public_a calamity_n and_o a_o certain_a sluggishness_n graff_v in_o we_o ought_v sometime_o to_o be_v renew_v by_o the_o diligence_n of_o pastor_n wherefore_o in_o the_o old_a law_n god_n institute_v a_o fast_a to_o be_v hold_v once_o a_o year_n namely_o in_o the_o 7._o month_n in_o the_o which_o day_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n shall_v afflict_v themselves_o before_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n that_o they_o have_v commit_v and_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v the_o more_o solemn_o be_v do_v god_n many_o time_n send_v his_o prophet_n to_o reproove_v the_o people_n of_o fast_v 5_o to_o begin_v at_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n auen-ezra_n in_o jud._n 20._o at_o the_o end_n auen-ezra_n this_o hebrew_n verb_n tsom_n signify_v to_o afflict_v wherefore_o auen-ezra_n say_v that_o wheresoever_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v find_v affliction_n of_o the_o soul_n there_o fast_v be_v understand_v there_o be_v another_o word_n namely_o tsame_a very_o nigh_o unto_o this_o word_n and_o it_o signify_v to_o thirst_v for_o they_o which_o fast_o much_o be_v wont_v to_o thirst_n because_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o body_n be_v with_o hunger_n and_o fast_v dry_v up_o the_o grecian_n do_v derive_v this_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o privative_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o of_o the_o greek_a verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v to_o be_v strong_a and_o firm_a because_o by_o fast_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o body_n be_v diminish_v but_o because_o this_o privative_a or_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v rather_o extensive_a it_o seem_v to_o signify_v a_o very_a firm_a and_o strong_a thing_n because_o a_o man_n that_o be_v fast_v be_v very_o firm_a and_o constant_a so_o that_o he_o have_v rather_o suffer_v pain_n than_o go_v from_o his_o purpose_n also_o the_o grecian_n have_v another_o word_n for_o fast_v namely_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o they_o which_o fast_o do_v withdraw_v from_o themselves_o nourishment_n and_o food_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v both_o corn_n and_o meat_n fast_v a_o distinction_n of_o fast_v but_o before_o i_o define_v what_o fast_v be_v i_o think_v good_a to_o distinguish_v the_o same_o for_o see_v there_o be_v sundry_a kind_n of_o fasting_n they_o serve_v not_o all_o to_o our_o purpose_n for_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a fast_o that_o be_v natural_a fast_o a_o natural_a fast_o which_o pertain_v either_o to_o the_o defend_n or_o recover_v the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n wherefore_o hypocrates_n say_v that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a age_n or_o else_o be_v old_a hippocrat_n hippocrat_n can_v very_o well_o abide_v fast_v in_o which_o place_n old_a man_n must_v be_v understand_v as_o concern_v the_o first_o entrance_n into_o old_a age_n for_o they_o which_o be_v old_a can_v no_o better_o abide_v fast_v than_o young_a man_n or_o child_n this_o kind_n of_o fast_v we_o leave_v to_o the_o physician_n see_v it_o be_v none_o of_o that_o which_o we_o entreat_v of_o there_o be_v another_o fast_n which_o be_v civil_a fast_o a_o civil_a fast_o and_o be_v then_o take_v in_o hand_n when_o man_n be_v so_o bend_v to_o their_o business_n as_o by_o no_o mean_n they_o will_v intermit_v their_o affair_n which_o they_o have_v in_o hand_n so_o saul_n when_o he_o pursue_v the_o
declare_v say_v 5._o ibidem_fw-la 5._o through_o he_o which_o love_v we_o before_o we_o can_v love_v he_o and_o he_o have_v give_v we_o his_o spirit_n through_o who_o we_o obtain_v a_o excellent_a victory_n otherwise_o of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v far_o unequal_a for_o such_o a_o battle_n chrysost_n chrysost_n it_o be_v god_n as_o chrysostome_n have_v wise_o note_v who_o in_o this_o fight_n we_o have_v our_o fellow_n soldier_n torment_n god_n be_v our_o fellow_n soldier_n in_o torment_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v we_o obtain_v so_o notable_a a_o victory_n neither_o do_v we_o only_o overcome_v trouble_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v but_o even_o those_o enemy_n also_o which_o persecute_v we_o seem_v they_o never_o so_o great_a and_o mighty_a which_o how_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o apostle_n luke_n plain_o describe_v in_o the_o acts._n when_o a_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v by_o peter_n and_o john_n in_o such_o manifest_a sort_n as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o scribe_n be_v overcome_v with_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o thing_n know_v not_o what_o counsel_n to_o take_v 16._o acts._n 4_o 16._o what_o say_v they_o shall_v we_o do_v with_o these_o man_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v here_o be_v our_o practice_n overthrow_v here_o our_o power_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o here_o the_o more_o we_o strive_v the_o more_o and_o more_o manifest_o we_o be_v overcome_v the_o same_o happen_v unto_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la apostata_fw-la julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n he_o have_v begin_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o mean_n to_o vex_v and_o torment_v the_o christian_n but_o his_o cruelty_n and_o outragiousnes_n be_v overcome_v with_o their_o patience_n which_o one_o of_o his_o ruler_n perceive_v private_o admonish_v he_o to_o cease_v lest_o he_o shall_v not_o profit_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o make_v himself_o a_o laugh_a stock_n to_o all_o man_n this_o power_n of_o god_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o even_o by_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n which_o be_v against_o the_o victory_n we_o obtain_v a_o more_o notable_a victory_n to_o the_o great_a admiration_n of_o all_o man_n for_o who_o can_v believe_v that_o he_o which_o be_v vanquish_v can_v get_v the_o victory_n that_o one_o slay_v burn_a and_o tear_v in_o piece_n be_v able_a to_o overcome_v in_o battle_n these_o thing_n nature_n reason_n and_o the_o world_n understand_v not_o wherefore_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n only_o in_o who_o hand_n see_v the_o event_n of_o thing_n be_v set_v they_o depend_v not_o of_o certain_a and_o appoint_a instrument_n but_o of_o the_o purpose_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n unto_o who_o those_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o resist_v do_v most_o service_n 17_o for_o which_o cause_n i_o think_v 32._o gen._n 32._o that_o god_n provide_v that_o the_o mind_n of_o jacob_n may_v be_v confirm_v by_o wrestle_v and_o that_o he_o may_v learn_v that_o so_o much_o divine_a strength_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o he_o as_o he_o shall_v never_o either_o by_o celestial_a or_o humane_a power_n be_v hinder_v from_o obtain_v the_o promise_n offer_v to_o he_o by_o god_n sinew_n what_o portend_v the_o shrink_n of_o jacobs_n sinew_n but_o the_o shrink_n of_o the_o sinew_n be_v therefore_o add_v because_o he_o may_v understand_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v these_o thing_n without_o great_a trouble_n and_o sorrow_n for_o he_o be_v constrain_v in_o his_o life_n time_n to_o have_v trial_n of_o many_o both_o bitter_a and_o lamentable_a thing_n from_o he_o be_v his_o only_a daughter_n dina_n take_v away_o and_o ravish_v 18._o gen._n 34_o 2._o gen._n 35_o 22._o gen._n 37._o 26._o gen._n 38_o 18._o reuben_n dishonour_v his_o father_n bed_n joseph_n his_o most_o dear_a son_n be_v miserable_o sell_v juda_n enjoy_v the_o most_o shameful_a company_n of_o his_o son_n wife_n and_o fall_v into_o great_a danger_n of_o the_o sichemite_n 29._o gen._n 34_o 29._o upon_o good_a cause_n therefore_o be_v his_o sinew_n hurt_v and_o he_o compel_v to_o go_v halt_v thou_o may_v perceive_v that_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n happen_v to_o we_o which_o true_o perteine_a unto_o israel_n while_o that_o we_o wrestle_v valiant_o against_o adversity_n abide_v for_o christ_n his_o sake_n persecution_n banishment_n the_o spoil_n of_o our_o good_n and_o other_o infinite_a misery_n we_o be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o wrestle_v against_o god_n see_v those_o thing_n happen_v not_o without_o his_o appointment_n for_o he_o send_v temptation_n they_o the_o godly_a strive_v with_o affliction_n and_o overcome_v they_o whereby_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o be_v exercise_v and_o after_o what_o sort_n the_o faithful_a here_o do_v attain_v to_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n paul_n have_v express_v unto_o the_o roman_n when_o he_o say_v that_o no_o creture_n 37._o rom._n 8_o 37._o neither_o power_n nor_o principality_n nor_o any_o other_o thing_n shall_v have_v so_o great_a strength_n that_o it_o can_v draw_v we_o away_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o as_o touch_v that_o stripe_n of_o the_o sinew_n it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o galathian_o 24._o galat._n 5_o 24._o that_o they_o which_o be_v of_o christ_n have_v crucify_v the_o flesh_n with_o all_o the_o affection_n thereof_o doubtless_o the_o father_n as_o augustine_n also_o in_o the_o 18._o angel_n the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v the_o wrestle_n of_o jacob_n with_o the_o angel_n book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la do_v expound_v that_o the_o angel_n in_o this_o wrestle_n do_v shadow_n christ_n who_o for_o the_o dispose_n and_o order_v of_o our_o redemption_n seem_v good_a to_o be_v overcome_v of_o israel_n which_o crucify_v he_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v bless_v his_o enemy_n pray_v most_o effectual_o for_o they_o from_o thenceforth_o notwithstanding_o they_o become_v lame_a for_o part_n of_o they_o follow_v christ_n and_o other_o will_v not_o believe_v or_o else_o in_o respect_n that_o their_o temporal_a kingdom_n begin_v even_o then_o to_o be_v in_o hard_a case_n jerom_n make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a wrestle_n and_o thereof_o he_o write_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n in_o these_o word_n 12._o ephes_n 6_o 12._o our_o wrestle_n be_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o same_o father_n take_v his_o opinion_n from_o the_o prophet_n osee_n place_n verse_n 3._o oseas_n exposition_n of_o this_o place_n who_o say_v in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n that_o jacob_n so_o overcome_v in_o wrestle_v with_o the_o angel_n as_o he_o weep_v and_o pray_v he_o wherefore_o beside_o that_o bodily_a strive_n it_o be_v also_o a_o contend_v of_o most_o vehement_a prayer_n here_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o that_o he_o pray_v for_o blessing_n but_o osee_n be_v a_o excellent_a interpreter_n thereof_o write_v that_o he_o not_o only_o pray_v but_o also_o add_v tear_n withal_o do_v not_o thou_o for_o this_o cause_n infer_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v prayer_n unto_o angel_n angel_n prayer_n must_v not_o be_v offer_v unto_o angel_n for_o this_o name_n all_o only_o do_v not_o betoken_v a_o angel_n but_o it_o be_v also_o attribute_v unto_o god_n and_o lest_o we_o shall_v fall_v into_o this_o error_n the_o scripture_n have_v provide_v to_o instruct_v we_o by_o the_o angel_n themselves_o who_o will_v not_o abide_v to_o be_v worship_v 8._o apo._n 19_o 10._o and_o 22_o 8._o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n neither_o will_v i_o forget_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a interpreter_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o by_o the_o say_n of_o osee_n will_v that_o the_o angel_n do_v weep_v in_o that_o wrestle_n and_o that_o tear_n be_v not_o unbeséeming_a for_o angel_n they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v by_o the_o say_n of_o esaie_n 7._o esaie_n 33_o 7._o angel_n of_o peace_n will_v bitter_o weep_v but_o this_o place_n serve_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o if_o the_o word_n of_o osee_n be_v ambiguous_a the_o sense_n which_o i_o now_o express_v of_o they_o be_v more_o likely_a to_o be_v true_a than_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o jew_n do_v gather_v thereof_o neither_o must_v the_o angel_n in_o this_o fact_n be_v accuse_v of_o lie_v who_o will_v not_o deceive_v jacob_n in_o feign_v to_o be_v a_o wrestler_n but_o mean_v to_o instruct_v he_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o use_v such_o a_o action_n as_o may_v easy_o show_v to_o he_o the_o strength_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o in_o present_a peril_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v faint_a heart_a 28._o luk._n 24_o 28._o after_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n christ_n when_o he_o go_v forward_o unto_o emaus_n with_o his_o two_o disciple_n pretend_v as_o though_o he_o will_v go_v further_o but_o whereas_o it_o be_v
against_o the_o argue_v of_o our_o lord_n there_o be_v a_o cavil_n object_v namely_o that_o god_n call_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n of_o isaac_n and_o of_o jacob_n because_o he_o be_v their_o god_n in_o old_a time_n while_o they_o live_v he_o help_v they_o and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o but_o this_o be_v a_o fond_a objection_n because_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v their_o god_n but_o the_o word_n be_v pronounce_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o their_o god_n in_o very_a deed_n in_o the_o hebrew_n the_o verb_n substantive_a be_v not_o put_v to_o but_o it_o be_v absolute_o write_v anoki_n elobe_n but_o this_o make_v no_o matter_n see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n express_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o evangelist_n the_o verb_n substantive_a namely_o am●…_n for_o they_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o if_o the_o godly_a who_o be_v depart_v have_v no_o fruition_n at_o all_o of_o life_n nor_o be_v not_o thereunto_o to_o be_v call_v again_o what_o commodity_n be_v they_o to_o wait_v for_o of_o he_o or_o how_o be_v he_o their_o god_n moreover_o a_o master_n have_v certain_a scholar_n he_o may_v say_v so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v i_o be_o their_o master_n but_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a he_o can_v so_o say_v even_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o a_o wife_n when_o her_o husband_n be_v dead_a will_v not_o say_v i_o be_o his_o wife_n but_o i_o be_v his_o wife_n and_o the_o father_n when_o his_o son_n be_v dead_a will_v not_o say_v i_o be_o but_o i_o be_v his_o father_n even_o so_o be_v it_o gather_v that_o life_n must_v after_o some_o sort_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o those_o father_n which_o be_v dead_a if_o god_n shall_v be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v their_o god_n for_o there_o be_v no_o benefit_n bestow_v upon_o they_o that_o be_v utterlie_o dead_a nor_o do_v i_o make_v reckon_n of_o those_o caviller_n which_o affirm_v that_o god_n do_v good_a unto_o the_o father_n depart_v in_o their_o posterity_n for_o it_o must_v be_v consider_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o proposition_n be_v copulative_a namely_o that_o god_n will_v be_v god_n both_o of_o the_o father_n themselves_o and_o also_o of_o their_o issue_n and_o therefore_o the_o same_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a as_o well_o for_o the_o one_o part_n as_o the_o other_o here_o in_o consist_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o reason_n that_o we_o understand_v that_o god_n do_v always_o benefit_n maintain_v and_o defend_v they_o who_o god_n he_o be_v and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o covenant_n make_v between_o god_n and_o man_n god_n will_v be_v worship_v and_o have_v in_o honour_n by_o they_o and_o again_o that_o he_o will_v acknowledge_v they_o for_o his_o people_n but_o who_o can_v be_v a_o father_n without_o child_n who_o can_v be_v a_o lord_n without_o servant_n 12._o christ_n be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o use_v this_o argument_n abac._n 1_o 12._o who_o can_v be_v a_o king_n without_o subject_n certeinlie_o none_n and_o even_o so_o god_n can_v be_v the_o god_n of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o but_o this_o connexion_n christ_n show_v not_o at_o the_o first_o but_o abacuch_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n touch_v the_o same_o when_o he_o say_v see_v thou_o be_v our_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n we_o shall_v not_o die_v that_o be_v to_o wit_n everlastinglie_o therefore_o god_n suffer_v not_o they_o who_o god_n he_o be_v utterlie_o to_o die_v and_o undoubted_o he_o be_v worship_v and_o honour_v of_o they_o who_o god_n he_o be_v but_o the_o dead_a do_v neither_o praise_n god_n neither_o yet_o do_v they_o worship_n or_o honour_v he_o wherefore_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n if_o they_o have_v a_o god_n they_o worship_v he_o if_o they_o do_v this_o now_o be_v they_o not_o dead_a but_o let_v we_o hear_v christ_n himself_o how_o he_o fortify_v &_o confirm_v the_o reason_n that_o be_v bring_v when_o he_o have_v say_v i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n as_o though_o some_o man_n have_v answer_v what_o then_o he_o add_v withal_o but_o god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n but_o against_o this_o say_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v which_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o roman_n christ_n therefore_o die_v 9_o rom._n 14._o 9_o and_o rise_v again_o that_o he_o may_v have_v dominion_n both_o over_o the_o dead_a and_o over_o the_o live_n whereof_o some_o man_n will_v gather_v that_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n for_o god_n to_o be_v lord_n of_o they_o which_o be_v dead_a there_o be_v some_o which_o answer_n that_o christ_n say_v not_o that_o god_n be_v not_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o say_v the_o very_a truth_n this_o seem_v to_o i_o but_o a_o slender_a shift_n in_o argue_v for_o it_o be_v manifest_a and_o evident_a enough_o that_o the_o lord_n and_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v both_o count_v one_o and_o the_o word_n elohe_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o hebrew_n be_v very_o often_o translate_v by_o the_o name_n of_o lord_n wherefore_o the_o doubt_n must_v be_v dissolve_v another_o way_n as_o to_o say_v with_o christ_n that_o god_n be_v only_o the_o god_n of_o the_o live_n but_o that_o these_o must_v be_v distinguish_v into_o two_o sort_n because_o some_o of_o they_o have_v their_o body_n as_o yet_o join_v to_o they_o and_o some_o be_v loose_v from_o the_o same_o nevertheless_o they_o live_v all_o notwithstanding_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o follow_v hereof_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v do_v live_v with_o god_n howbeit_o it_o must_v be_v add_v that_o god_n be_v not_o a_o saviour_n of_o a_o part_n of_o those_o which_o be_v he_o so_o as_o he_o will_v only_o have_v the_o soul_n to_o be_v save_v and_o as_o he_o be_v god_n both_o of_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o soul_n so_o will_v he_o save_v both_o nor_o shall_v if_o be_v meet_a for_o they_o which_o have_v serve_v god_n pure_o and_o sincere_o to_o obtain_v only_o a_o half_a salvation_n they_o shall_v in_o very_a deed_n have_v a_o full_a whole_a and_o perfect_a salvation_n 25_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o argue_v of_o christ_n confute_v the_o anabaptist_n be_v by_o this_o manner_n of_o christ_n argue_v confute_v the_o anabaptist_n be_v two_o way_n beat_v first_o because_o they_o think_v that_o the_o old_a testament_n serve_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o we_o see_v christ_n do_v plain_o take_v a_o testimony_n from_o hence_o to_o confirm_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o also_o the_o apostle_n at_o diverse_a time_n do_v again_o whereas_o they_o contend_v with_o we_o for_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n they_o will_v have_v we_o to_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n express_v plain_a and_o manifest_a word_n whereby_o be_v affirm_v that_o child_n shall_v be_v baptize_v neither_o will_v they_o be_v content_a with_o the_o reason_n and_o conclusion_n derive_v from_o the_o scripture_n when_o as_o christ_n nevertheless_o intend_v here_o to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a bring_v no_o express_a testimony_n but_o such_o a_o testimony_n as_o from_o thence_o the_o resurrection_n may_v be_v infer_v and_o he_o himself_o have_v bring_v in_o a_o testimony_n add_v the_o minor_a or_o less_o proposition_n say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n but_o there_o be_v other_o also_o even_o of_o our_o time_n which_o think_v that_o the_o testimony_n allege_v by_o christ_n be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o elder_a father_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o know_v it_o sure_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a for_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o old_a people_n have_v in_o deed_n salvation_n by_o christ_n in_o receive_v through_o he_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o perpetual_a felicity_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o understand_v not_o these_o thing_n even_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o the_o child_n of_o christian_n be_v save_v when_o as_o they_o nevertheless_o as_o yet_o understand_v not_o the_o heavenly_a and_o christian_n mystery_n they_o say_v that_o god_n through_o temporal_a and_o worldly_a promise_n namely_o of_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o of_o innumerable_a issue_n through_o victory_n and_o riches_n feed_v they_o and_o keep_v they_o in_o his_o service_n but_o that_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o christ_n as_o the_o saviour_n from_o sin_n and_o from_o everlasting_a death_n as_o the_o author_n of_o life_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o of_o all_o good_a gift_n and_o they_o will_v have_v it_o that_o christ_n first_o of_o all_o other_o reveal_v the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o derive_v his_o
so_o gréevous_a wickedness_n and_o very_o well_o doubtless_o among_o the_o hebrews_n be_v both_o glory_n &_o tongue_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n cavod_v for_o albeit_o that_o man_n dignity_n depend_v of_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n name_n why_o the_o hebrews_n call_v a_o tongue_n and_o glory_n both_o by_o one_o name_n yet_o the_o same_o be_v invisible_a be_v not_o know_v by_o any_o other_o thing_n more_o than_o by_o speech_n whereupon_o some_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o special_a distinction_n of_o mankind_n be_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o speak_v and_o aristotle_n say_v that_o word_n be_v token_n of_o those_o passion_n or_o affection_n which_o be_v in_o the_o mind_n also_o democritus_n teach_v that_o speech_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o certain_a flow_v of_o reason_n for_o the_o thought_n of_o our_o reason_n which_o be_v hide_v flow_v and_o break_v forth_o by_o word_n so_o as_o the_o meaning_n of_o david_n be_v i_o have_v conceive_v so_o much_o joy_n in_o my_o mind_n as_o my_o tongue_n excéedinglie_o reioise_v in_o give_v of_o thanks_o and_o set_v forth_o of_o his_o benefit_n neither_o do_v my_o gladness_n there_o cease_v but_o it_o also_o replenish_v the_o body_n for_o my_o flesh_n shall_v rest_v in_o hope_n the_o verb_n jaschab_n betoken_v not_o only_o to_o lie_v or_o rest_n but_o also_o to_o dwell_v whereupon_o some_o have_v interpret_v it_o shall_v bold_o dwell_v and_o from_o whence_o this_o confidence_n arise_v he_o straitwaie_o add_v because_o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n nor_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n my_o flesh_n do_v rest_n in_o hope_n or_o bold_o dwell_v because_o i_o hope_v that_o i_o shall_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n unto_o life_n and_o that_o life_n not_o to_o be_v common_a but_o a_o true_a happy_a and_o everlasting_a life_n therefore_o he_o add_v thou_o shall_v show_v i_o the_o path_n of_o life_n the_o fullness_n of_o joy_n be_v in_o thy_o countenance_n at_o thy_o right_a hand_n be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o 29_o these_o verse_n of_o david_n be_v allege_v in_o the_o act_n both_o by_o peter_n and_o paul_n 35._o acts._n 2_o 25._o acts._n 13_o 35._o before_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n as_o be_v thing_n which_o pertein_v to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o they_o three_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v allege_v first_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v understand_v secondlie_o to_o know_v whether_o they_o do_v belong_v unto_o christ_n or_o unto_o david_n last_o of_o all_o how_o they_o may_v be_v apt_o apply_v to_o our_o resurrection_n first_o and_o foremost_a we_o must_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o the_o judgement_n be_v pronounce_v by_o god_n 19_o gen._n 3_o 19_o against_o adam_n and_o his_o posterity_n that_o by_o death_n they_o shall_v return_v into_o the_o earth_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v take_v and_o in_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v perpetuallie_o have_v remain_v unless_o christ_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n have_v cut_v off_o and_o abrogate_a that_o curse_n he_o very_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v but_o he_o live_v not_o so_o long_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n that_o his_o dead_a body_n do_v putrify_v he_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v as_o other_o man_n be_v but_o see_v not_o corruption_n in_o like_a manner_n as_o they_o do_v other_o man_n also_o shall_v not_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o grave_n see_v that_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n they_o shall_v rise_v again_o yet_o shall_v they_o not_o escape_v corruption_n although_o that_o their_o body_n by_o the_o travel_n of_o physician_n be_v preserve_v either_o with_o myrrh_n or_o aloe_n or_o balm_n or_o with_o other_o spice_n for_o the_o flesh_n be_v consume_v and_o be_v whole_o dry_v up_o it_o cleave_v to_o the_o bone_n be_v so_o corrupt_v and_o change_v as_o it_o may_v rather_o seem_v to_o be_v skin_n than_o flesh_n the_o elect_a while_o they_o live_v here_o be_v not_o deliver_v from_o trouble_n vexation_n calamity_n and_o disease_n yea_o in_o comparison_n of_o other_o they_o suffer_v gréevous_a thing_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v at_o rest_n very_o not_o in_o act_n but_o in_o the_o hope_n of_o resurrection_n thereby_o be_v they_o comfort_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o death_n by_o it_o the_o martyr_n do_v constant_o suffer_v and_o be_v liberal_a of_o their_o life_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o this_o hope_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o word_n which_o follow_v do_v sufficient_o declare_v thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n nor_o suffer_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n this_o hope_n nevertheless_o albeit_o it_o do_v cheer_v we_o up_o very_o much_o and_o do_v excéedinglie_o strengthen_v we_o yet_o have_v it_o sigh_n &_o sob_n join_v therewith_o for_o paul_n in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n 22._o verse_n 22._o write_v we_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v sigh_n in_o ourselves_o expect_v the_o adoption_n and_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n for_o through_o hope_n we_o be_v save_v 30_o moreover_o that_o say_v have_v a_o great_a emphasis_n grave_n psal_n 16_o 10._o what_o emphasis_n these_o word_n have_v thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o the_o grave_n wherein_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v i_o in_o the_o grave_n for_o thereby_o david_n prophesi_v that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bury_v for_o we_o leave_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o a_o place_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o put_v there_o wherefore_o he_o deal_v not_o in_o this_o place_n touch_v any_o protection_n safe_a custody_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o this_o world_n but_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o eternal_a life_n even_o cattle_n and_o brute_n beast_n when_o they_o die_v be_v at_o rest_n as_o well_o from_o disease_n as_o from_o labour_n but_o they_o rest_v not_o in_o hope_n because_o they_o hope_v not_o for_o the_o bless_a and_o happy_a resurrection_n the_o hebrew_n word_n chasid_n be_v translate_v by_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v holy_a so_o be_v christ_n peculiarlie_o call_v 14._o acts._n 3_o 14._o the_o holy_a one_o of_o god_n and_o so_o do_v the_o devil_n call_v he_o 34._o mark_n 1_o 24._o luk._n 4_o 34._o as_o we_o read_v in_o mark_n and_o in_o luke_n scheol_n among_o the_o hebrews_n express_v both_o a_o grave_n and_o also_o hell_n of_o the_o verb_n schaal_n which_o be_v to_o crave_v because_o these_o thing_n seem_v evermore_o to_o demand_v and_o crave_v neither_o be_v they_o at_o any_o time_n satisfy_v the_o 70._o interpreter_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o act_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d into_o hell_n but_o schacath_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o verb_n schacath_n which_o signify_v to_o destroy_v and_o corrupt_v whereupon_o as_o well_o a_o hole_n as_o a_o grave_n be_v call_v schacath_n because_o dead_a carcase_n do_v there_o putrify_v and_o corrupt_v thus_o much_o of_o the_o name_n so_o as_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n have_v that_o christ_n be_v dead_a and_o bury_v but_o yet_o so_o as_o neither_o his_o soul_n be_v long_o detain_v in_o hell_n nor_o yet_o his_o body_n so_o long_o tarry_v in_o the_o grave_n that_o it_o have_v trial_n of_o corruption_n these_o word_n contain_v singular_a and_o excellent_a comfort_n as_o touch_v the_o flesh_n see_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v raise_v up_o from_o death_n which_o doubtless_o will_v be_v no_o comfort_n at_o all_o if_o so_o be_v that_o our_o body_n and_o flesh_n shall_v be_v subject_v unto_o perpetual_a death_n the_o elect_n do_v advance_v their_o joy_n and_o hope_n because_o they_o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o death_n they_o know_v that_o in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v no_o speak_v of_o a_o certain_a short_a deliverance_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o for_o a_o time_n certeinlie_o david_n be_v many_o time_n deliver_v from_o sundry_a danger_n and_o from_o most_o sharp_a and_o deadly_a sickness_n and_o for_o those_o benefit_n he_o in_o his_o psalm_n give_v god_n sundry_a thanks_o for_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o for_o his_o benefit_n but_o in_o this_o place_n he_o speak_v of_o eternal_a life_n and_o of_o the_o chief_a felicity_n which_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v do_v declare_v when_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o shall_v show_v i_o the_o path_n of_o life_n in_o thy_o presence_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o thy_o right_a hand_n there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o but_o it_o be_v a_o cold_a comfort_n that_o arise_v through_o hope_n of_o deliverance_n from_o one_o danger_n or_o another_o and_o from_o one_o disease_n or_o another_o when_o other_o be_v at_o hand_n
〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o erasmus_n correct_v it_o in_o his_o scholies_n to_o jeronymus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o preserve_v place_n or_o séed-store_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o this_o he_o say_v shall_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n shoot_v forth_o and_o bud_v out_o humane_a body_n but_o not_o flesh_n bone_n and_o blood_n lest_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_n of_o marriage_n barber_n and_o of_o handkerchief_n to_o wipe_v away_o the_o uncleanlines_n of_o the_o nose_n and_o when_o he_o deni_v that_o the_o flesh_n shall_v return_v he_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o paul_n wherein_o he_o say_v 8._o rom._n 8_o 8._o that_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n for_o the_o apostle_n by_o flesh_n mean_v not_o in_o that_o place_n substance_n and_o nature_n but_o corruption_n viciousnesse_n and_o lewdness_n even_o as_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n god_n say_v 3._o gen._n 6_o 3._o my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o rest_v upon_o these_o man_n because_o they_o be_v flesh_n and_o by_o paul_n it_o be_v write_v 9_o rom._n 8_o 9_o but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o wherefore_o origin_n judge_v that_o the_o body_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v again_o shall_v be_v homogenium_fw-la that_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n now_o say_v he_o we_o see_v with_o eye_n we_o hear_v with_o ear_n and_o we_o go_v with_o foot_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v see_v hear_v and_o go_v with_o that_o whole_a body_n he_o moreover_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o paul_n unto_o the_o philippian_n when_o he_o say_v of_o jesus_n christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 21._o phil._n 3_o 21._o he_o shall_v transfigure_v the_o body_n of_o our_o humility_n for_o this_o he_o also_o understand_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o nature_n &_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n whereas_o it_o respect_v only_o the_o change_n of_o quality_n and_o condition_n for_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o whence_o that_o verb_n be_v derive_v belong_v to_o the_o predicament_n of_o quality_n and_o so_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v form_n or_o shape_n whereof_o be_v derive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v conform_v these_o thing_n if_o origin_n have_v wey_v he_o have_v not_o so_o foulie_o fall_v as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v again_o shall_v be_v airy_a or_o elemental_a so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v subject_a either_o to_o see_v or_o feel_v but_o shall_v be_v invisible_a and_o unpalpable_a yet_o do_v he_o leave_v they_o a_o place_n for_o he_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v remoove_v according_a to_o the_o variety_n of_o place_n where_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o which_o confess_v that_o flesh_n and_o bone_n shall_v be_v restore_v again_o unto_o we_o do_v take_v away_o place_n from_o they_o but_o i_o return_v to_o origin_n who_o teach_v that_o indeed_o the_o body_n shall_v rise_v again_o but_o not_o the_o flesh_n but_o these_o be_v distinguish_v body_n a_o distinction_n of_o the_o flesh_n from_o the_o body_n as_o the_o general_a and_o the_o special_a kind_n for_o every_o flesh_n be_v a_o body_n but_o every_o body_n be_v not_o flesh_n for_o flesh_n be_v that_o which_o consist_v of_o blood_n and_o vein_n and_o skin_n and_o also_o of_o bone_n and_o sinew_n but_o of_o body_n some_o be_v airy_a or_o elemental_a such_o as_o plato_n assign_v to_o certain_a spirit_n &_o unto_o our_o soul_n wherein_o as_o in_o a_o certain_a chariot_n they_o shall_v be_v carry_v and_o join_v to_o the_o outward_a body_n which_o be_v the_o more_o gross_a and_o more_o earthy_a and_o those_o body_n which_o he_o imagine_v to_o be_v on_o this_o sort_n may_v not_o be_v either_o feel_v or_o perceive_v there_o be_v also_o other_o body_n which_o may_v both_o be_v see_v and_o feel_v when_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v no_o flesh_n as_o be_v a_o wall_n and_o wood_n which_o be_v sensible_a body_n and_o yet_o no_o flesh_n so_o as_o the_o body_n which_o be_v the_o general_a word_n be_v draw_v by_o the_o flesh_n into_o a_o special_a kind_n which_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n unto_o the_o colossian_n 21._o col._n 1_o 21._o who_o say_v when_o you_o be_v stranger_n from_o christ_n and_o enemy_n by_o cogitation_n in_o evil_a work_n have_v he_o yet_o now_o reconcile_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n 11._o col._n 2_o 11._o through_o death_n and_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n with_o circumcision_n make_v without_o hand_n by_o put_v off_o the_o body_n of_o flesh_n subject_a to_o sin_n this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o origin_n out_o of_o the_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o jerom_n report_v in_o his_o epistle_n against_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n error_n origin_n error_n 63_o he_o great_o err_v in_o many_o thing_n concern_v this_o matter_n first_o he_o fond_o reason_v of_o that_o séed-store_n of_o dead_a man_n remain_v after_o death_n in_o the_o ash_n of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v for_o what_o need_n be_v it_o to_o appoint_v a_o original_n of_o the_o resurrection_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o body_n the_o action_n of_o raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a be_v all_o whole_o in_o god_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o power_n of_o the_o body_n whereby_o it_o shall_v spring_v up_o again_o and_o to_o note_v this_o by_o the_o way_n read_v a_o rule_n the_o father_n must_v be_v wary_o read_v some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n must_v be_v read_v very_o circumspect_o because_o they_o seem_v to_o attribute_v unto_o the_o eucharist_n that_o which_o origin_n have_v assign_v to_o reason_n and_o to_o a_o power_n ingraff_v in_o the_o body_n which_o be_v not_o extinguish_v in_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a of_o this_o matter_n do_v irenaeus_n in_o his_o 4._o justinus_n irenaeus_n justinus_n book_n and_o justinus_n in_o his_o apology_n unto_o antonius_n the_o emperor_n write_v and_o say_v that_o our_o body_n when_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o eucharist_n resurrection_n whether_o the_o eucharist_n profit_n unto_o the_o resurrection_n be_v no_o more_o mortal_a because_o that_o sacrament_n be_v become_v unto_o our_o body_n a_o preserver_n unto_o life_n everlasting_a if_o these_o thing_n shall_v proper_o &_o absolute_o be_v understand_v as_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v teach_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n pass_v into_o the_o true_a nourishment_n of_o body_n and_o so_o in_o they_o to_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o opinion_n will_v be_v very_o absurd_a for_o the_o very_a meat_n of_o the_o body_n be_v concoct_v digest_v &_o distribute_v among_o the_o part_n and_o be_v also_o convert_v into_o the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o he_o which_o be_v nourish_v but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v impassable_a can_v be_v change_v into_o other_o body_n even_o as_o also_o it_o can_v be_v bury_v with_o they_o yet_o do_v those_o father_n true_o write_v so_o as_o their_o saieng_n be_v fit_o understand_v wherefore_o let_v we_o understand_v that_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v receive_v bread_n and_o wine_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o their_o body_n and_o they_o with_o their_o mind_n and_o spirit_n do_v receive_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n even_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o be_v give_v upon_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o salvation_n and_o that_o in_o receive_v these_o thing_n by_o faith_n we_o be_v justify_v and_o regenerate_v or_o we_o be_v confirm_v in_o righteousness_n and_o spiritual_a birth_n but_o justification_n and_o regeneration_n which_o be_v in_o the_o mind_n do_v make_v the_o body_n itself_o capable_a of_o resurrection_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o may_v say_v that_o the_o outward_a element_n which_o we_o receive_v with_o our_o body_n be_v a_o preparative_n to_o the_o resurrection_n because_o they_o be_v instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o he_o stir_v up_o faith_n in_o we_o which_o be_v the_o very_a original_n of_o resurrection_n 64_o herein_o moreover_o origin_n err_v homogen●…_n corpus_fw-la homogen●…_n in_o judge_v that_o the_o body_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n so_o as_o the_o whole_a shall_v see_v the_o whole_a shall_v hear_v and_o the_o whole_a shall_v go_v as_o though_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v eye_n ear_n and_o foot_n distinct_a one_o from_o another_o furthermore_o 2._o matt._n 17_o 2._o christ_n in_o his_o transfiguration_n when_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n a_o pattern_n of_o bless_a body_n
pass_v over_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n that_o by_o that_o similitude_n which_o job_n use_v of_o the_o cloud_n which_o sudden_o go_v away_o be_v note_v the_o shortness_n of_o our_o life_n even_o as_o james_n do_v also_o in_o his_o epistle_n when_o he_o say_v what_o be_v your_o life_n even_o a_o vapour_n that_o appear_v for_o a_o little_a while_n afterward_o he_o say_v it_o shall_v not_o return_v to_o his_o own_o home_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o these_o condition_n of_o this_o life_n shall_v not_o be_v receive_v again_o after_o resurrection_n to_o wit_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v again_o be_v a_o prince_n a_o householder_n husbandman_n citizen_n or_o in_o such_o other_o state_n neither_o do_v aben-ezra_n dissemble_v that_o by_o this_o place_n also_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o disproove_v there_o be_v another_o argument_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o daniel_n because_o he_o write_v that_o many_o shall_v rise_v again_o and_o do_v not_o say_v all_n whereby_o grow_v a_o suspicion_n lest_o he_o shall_v make_v the_o resurrection_n particular_a &_o not_o as_o it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v universal_a howbeit_o we_o expound_v this_o say_n of_o he_o and_o declare_v that_o he_o may_v not_o say_v all_o see_v many_o be_v to_o be_v find_v alive_a at_o the_o last_o day_n who_o in_o very_a deed_n shall_v not_o die_v but_o be_v change_v nevertheless_o the_o prophet_n in_o that_o place_n touch_v the_o resurrection_n as_o well_o of_o the_o godly_a as_o of_o the_o wicked_a when_o he_o say_v some_o shall_v rise_v unto_o ignominy_n and_o other_o unto_o glory_n and_o that_o everlastinglie_o neither_o also_o be_v that_o any_o hindrance_n which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o psalm_n namely_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o rise_v in_o judgement_n because_o he_o there_o treat_v of_o the_o cause_n and_o not_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o they_o shall_v not_o stand_v say_v he_o but_o their_o cause_n shall_v be_v overthrow_v for_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v quit_v at_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n but_o shall_v be_v condemn_v these_o answer_n have_v we_o make_v to_o the_o objection_n resurrection_n a_o conclusion_n of_o this_o treatise_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o according_a to_o our_o promise_n we_o have_v expound_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o now_o there_o remain_v that_o we_o indevor_n earnest_o while_o we_o live_v here_o to_o have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o first_o resurrection_n provide_v that_o our_o faith_n may_v be_v excellent_a our_o charity_n fervent_a and_o effectual_a our_o hope_n firm_a and_o constant_a and_o that_o our_o action_n aswell_o inward_a as_o outward_a may_v be_v christian_n and_o well_n order_v and_o that_o we_o subdue_v the_o wicked_a motion_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n altogether_o conform_v our_o will_n and_o mind_n unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o perform_v whereof_o we_o shall_v after_o the_o former_a obtain_v that_o latter_a and_o bless_a resurrection_n the_o xuj_o chapter_n of_o the_o take_n up_o of_o elias_n and_o henoch_n 11._o in_o 2._o kin._n 2._o verse_n 11._o now_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o discourse_v of_o the_o take_n up_o of_o elias_n and_o what_o i_o have_v determine_v to_o speak_v of_o i_o will_v divide_v into_o three_o principal_a point_n treatise_n a_o division_n of_o this_o treatise_n first_o i_o think_v it_o meet_v to_o be_v understand_v whither_o elias_n ascend_v that_o be_v what_o place_n he_o have_v occupy_v by_o his_o ascend_n secondlie_o whether_o he_o be_v dead_a and_o whether_o he_o enjoy_v his_o body_n or_o have_v put_v off_o the_o same_o thirdlie_o if_o he_o live_v whether_o he_o shall_v return_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o what_o end_n he_o be_v take_v up_o but_o forsomuch_o as_o this_o lot_n namely_o to_o be_v take_v up_o be_v common_a aswell_o unto_o henoch_n as_o unto_o he_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o genesis_n we_o will_v entreat_v of_o they_o both_o together_o 24._o verse_n 24._o howbeit_o henoch_n a_o comparison_n between_o the_o take_n up_o of_o elias_n and_o henoch_n this_o testimony_n of_o henoch_n differ_v from_o the_o history_n of_o elias_n because_o therein_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o place_n whereunto_o henoch_n be_v translate_v but_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v write_v of_o elias_n that_o he_o be_v take_v up_o through_o a_o whirlwind_n into_o heaven_n up_o how_o and_o whither_o elias_n be_v take_v up_o albeit_o some_o man_n may_v suppose_v that_o word_n schamaijm_n to_o be_v of_o the_o genetive_n case_n as_o though_o it_o be_v say_v in_o a_o whirlwind_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o elias_n be_v take_v up_o in_o a_o heavenly_a whirlwind_n but_o the_o interpretation_n that_o be_v receive_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o the_o expounder_n be_v that_o that_o word_n shall_v be_v understand_v as_o put_v in_o the_o accusative_a case_n and_o note_v the_o place_n unto_o the_o which_o elias_n ascend_v yet_o have_v we_o not_o hereby_o any_o thing_n certain_a or_o define_v because_o the_o name_n of_o the_o word_n heaven_n be_v manifold_a and_o under_o that_o name_n many_o thing_n be_v signify_v heaven_n among_o the_o hebrician_n be_v this_o air_n wherewith_o the_o earth_n and_o water_n be_v compass_v and_o sometime_o it_o signify_v those_o upper_a sphere_n which_o be_v garnish_v with_o sundry_a and_o manifold_a star_n also_o those_o high_a seat_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o be_v manifest_v far_o and_o wide_o above_o those_o visible_a sphere_n be_v call_v heaven_n albeit_o many_o in_o this_o our_o time_n account_v heaven_n to_o be_v a_o certain_a spiritual_a and_o bodiless_a place_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o be_v whole_o every_o where_n but_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o mingle_v together_o the_o high_a with_o the_o low_a and_o the_o low_a with_o the_o high_a we_o leave_v this_o ubiquarie_n and_o feign_a heaven_n say_v not_o that_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o bless_a be_v bodiless_a but_o be_v wide_a and_o large_o spread_v beyond_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o star_n and_o beyond_o the_o firmament_n itself_o 11._o the_o place_n whither_o christ_n ascend_v acts._n 1._o 11._o hereof_o also_o we_o think_v it_o come_v that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n ascend_v above_o all_o heaven_n as_o the_o apostolical_a history_n teach_v and_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 10._o eph._n 4_o 10._o where_o it_o be_v proper_o understand_v that_o he_o come_v to_o the_o lower_v most_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o he_o be_v conversant_a among_o man_n in_o this_o world_n so_o must_v the_o heaven_n whither_o he_o ascend_v be_v proper_o understand_v to_o be_v the_o high_a if_o respect_n be_v have_v unto_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o contrariety_n and_o undoubted_a credit_n also_o must_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o angel_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v from_o thence_o whither_o he_o by_o ascend_v go_v and_o peter_n in_o express_a word_n affirm_v 21._o acts._n 3_o 21._o that_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o until_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o which_o word_n the_o adverbe_n until_o have_v great_a force_n for_o it_o be_v even_o as_o if_o it_o be_v say_v he_o shall_v not_o come_v out_o of_o heaven_n unto_o we_o before_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v restore_v by_o the_o last_o judgement_n 2_o neither_o only_o be_v the_o latter_a father_n as_o beda_n and_o strabus_n of_o our_o side_n who_o testimony_n be_v recite_v by_o peter_n lombard_n sphere_n the_o first_o heaven_n which_o be_v next_o about_o the_o seven_o sphere_n that_o they_o affirm_v heaven_n to_o be_v empyreum_fw-la not_o so_o call_v as_o though_o any_o thing_n be_v burn_v in_o they_o with_o 〈◊〉_d but_o because_o of_o the_o fiery_a light_n with_o which_o kind_n the_o place_n be_v perpetuallie_o lighten_v &_o they_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o angel_n be_v there_o place_v immediate_o after_o their_o creation_n yea_o and_o ambrose_n and_o basil_n be_v man_n of_o great_a authority_n among_o the_o ecclesiastical_a father_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n for_o they_o expound_v the_o work_n of_o the_o six_o day_n demand_v whether_o the_o darkness_n be_v create_v by_o god_n and_o they_o answer_v god_n whether_o darkness_n be_v make_v by_o god_n that_o darkness_n have_v no_o essence_n and_o proper_a nature_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v forth_o by_o creation_n but_o that_o see_v it_o belong_v unto_o privation_n it_o follow_v of_o it_o own_o accord_n the_o firmament_n be_v under_o put_v as_o a_o arch_n or_o vault_n to_o a_o unshape_a matter_n for_o they_o say_v that_o before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v god_n himself_o live_v in_o a_o most_o splendent_a light_n which_o be_v shut_v forth_o remain_v when_o the_o firmament_n have_v be_v compass_v
the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n take_v away_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n under_o leo_n the_o emperor_n there_o be_v a_o consent_n to_o take_v away_o image_n but_o that_o consent_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a under_o irene_n be_v take_v away_o by_o a_o other_o consent_n and_o that_o self_n same_o consent_n be_v afterward_o also_o take_v away_o by_o the_o council_n of_o germany_n under_o charles_n the_o great_a but_o i_o will_v add_v a_o proof_n by_o induction_n that_o we_o must_v not_o always_o judge_v of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o father_n scripture_n we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o must_v rather_o judge_v the_o father_n by_o the_o scripture_n other_o father_n say_v that_o justification_n be_v of_o faith_n and_o not_o of_o work_n other_o do_v affirm_v that_o work_n do_v much_o avail_n unto_o justification_n who_o shall_v decide_v this_o controversy_n the_o word_n of_o god_n paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n say_v we_o judge_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v 26._o rom._n 3._o 26._o that_o paul_n in_o that_o place_n do_v only_o treat_v of_o ceremony_n for_o he_o treat_v in_o that_o place_n as_o touch_v that_o law_n which_o show_v sin_n and_o work_v wrath_n and_o he_o add_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o and_o he_o mention_v the_o decaloge_n 7._o rom._n 7._o 7._o i_o have_v not_o know_v lust_n say_v he_o unless_o the_o law_n have_v say_v thou_o shall_v not_o lust_n peter_n be_v reproove_v by_o paul_n 14._o gal._n 1._o 14._o because_o he_o dissemble_v and_o withdraw_v he_o from_o the_o table_n here_o do_v jerom_n contend_v with_o augustine_n jerom_n say_v that_o peter_n so_o deal_v with_o paul_n as_o though_o that_o matter_n have_v be_v do_v of_o set_a purpose_n that_o by_o the_o reprove_v of_o peter_n the_o jew_n which_o be_v present_a may_v the_o better_o understande_v the_o whole_a matter_n augustine_n can_v abide_v any_o dissemble_n or_o lie_v in_o the_o scripture_n who_o shall_v here_o be_v the_o judge_n the_o word_n of_o god_n 11_o ibid._n ver_fw-la 11_o paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o he_o be_v say_v he_o to_o be_v reprehend_v or_o blame_v because_o he_o do_v not_o walk_v upright_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n 18_o mat._n 16._o 18_o upon_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n &_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n other_o understand_v upon_o the_o rock_n that_o be_v upon_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o peter_n but_o other_o upon_o peter_n himself_o who_o shall_v judge_v this_o controversy_n the_o word_n of_o god_n paul_n say_v an_o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v than_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v 11_o 1._o cor._n 3._o 11_o even_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n the_o dead_a be_v oftentimes_o say_v to_o sleep_v 11._o joh._n 11._o 11._o that_o do_v some_o refer_v unto_o the_o body_n other_o unto_o the_o soul_n 43._o 1._o thess_n 4._o 13._o luk._n 23._o 43._o who_o shall_v judge_v this_o case_n the_o word_n of_o god_n christ_n say_v unto_o the_o thief_n this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n 5._o phil._n 1._o 23._o dan._n 9_o 5._o and_o paul_n say_v i_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n daniel_n confess_v his_o sin_n in_o which_o place_n origen_n say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o sustain_v his_o own_o person_n but_o the_o person_n of_o other_o augustine_n cit_v this_o very_a place_n against_o the_o pelagian_n and_o teach_v that_o none_o be_v innocent_a who_o shall_v judge_v these_o thing_n the_o word_n of_o god_n paul_n say_v 8_o rom._n 3._o 23._o 1._o john_n 1._o 8_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o need_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o john_n if_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o us._n 24._o rom._n 7._o 24._o paul_n say_v who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o this_o body_n subject_a unto_o death_n this_o do_v ambrose_n and_o augustine_n interpret_v of_o paul_n regenerate_v other_o think_v it_o be_v speak_v of_o other_o not_o regenerate_v and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v apply_v unto_o paul_n who_o shall_v judge_v of_o these_o say_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v write_v 22._o ibid._n ve_fw-la 22._o i_o serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o my_o mind_n but_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v serve_v not_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o mind_n and_o he_o add_v 19_o verse_n 19_o the_o good_a which_o i_o will_v that_o i_o do_v not_o but_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v those_o can_v will_v that_o which_o be_v good_a 25._o verse_n 25._o and_o he_o add_v through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n not_o regenerate_v to_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n the_o heretic_n call_v millenarii_fw-la think_v that_o christ_n will_v return_v unto_o the_o earth_n and_o reign_v among_o man_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o of_o this_o mind_n be_v papias_n lactantius_n apollinarius_n irenaeus_n justinus_n and_o other_o those_o do_v jerom_n flout_v and_o call_v it_o a_o jewish_a fable_n this_o controversy_n do_v the_o word_n of_o god_n easy_o decide_v paul_n say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n 17_o rom._n 14._o 17_o and_o christ_n say_v my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n 36._o joh._n 18._o 36._o and_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o my_o father_n they_o be_v neither_o marry_v nor_o do_v marry_o 30_o mat._n 22._o 30_o in_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a and_o augustine_n the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v unto_o infant_n this_o be_v not_o do_v in_o these_o day_n but_o which_o be_v the_o better_a the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v judge_v paul_n say_v 28._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 28._o let_v a_o man_n try_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o that_o cup._n but_o infant_n can_v not_o try_v themselves_o i_o may_v beside_o recite_v many_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o father_n disagree_v among_o themselves_o where_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o refer_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o let_v smith_n consider_v how_o wise_o he_o may_v write_v thus_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o level_v of_o these_o father_n let_v we_o examine_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v we_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o these_o man_n in_o reason_v of_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 18_o but_o our_o adversary_n while_o they_o thus_o obtrude_v the_o father_n seek_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o bear_v rule_n over_o our_o faith_n but_o this_o will_v not_o paul_n 24_o 1._o cor._n 1._o 24_o we_o will_v not_o say_v he_o bear_v rule_n over_o your_o faith_n that_o be_v under_o that_o pretence_n that_o we_o teach_v you_o faith_n we_o will_v not_o bear_v rule_n over_o you_o in_o take_v away_o your_o substance_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o father_n in_o respect_n that_o they_o teach_v faith_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v so_o far_o over-rule_v as_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v say_v or_o write_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o judge_v the_o contrary_a for_o that_o will_v not_o be_v to_o bear_v rule_n but_o to_o exercise_v tyranny_n augustine_n in_o his_o second_o book_n to_o cresconius_n grammaticus_n augustine_n augustine_n we_o say_v he_o do_v injury_n unto_o cyprian_n when_o we_o sever_v any_o of_o his_o writing_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n for_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n be_v make_v with_o so_o wholesome_a care_n whereunto_o certain_a book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v belong_v the_o which_o we_o ought_v not_o in_o any_o wise_a to_o judge_v and_o according_a unto_o which_o we_o may_v free_o judge_v of_o other_o man_n writing_n whether_o they_o be_v faithful_a or_o unfaithful_a constantine_n constantine_n and_o constantine_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a exhort_v the_o bishop_n that_o they_o shall_v decide_v all_o controversy_n by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o the_o scripture_n prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a and_o inspire_v by_o god_n as_o theodoretus_n testify_v in_o his_o history_n augustine_n augustine_n and_o augustine_n against_o faustus_n the_o maniche_n in_o the_o xv_o book_n and_o v._o chapter_n the_o scripture_n say_v he_o be_v set_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o certain_a seat_n aloft_o to_o the_o which_o every_o faithful_a and_o godly_a understanding_n shall_v humble_v itself_o therein_o if_o any_o thing_n as_o absurd_a shall_v move_v we_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o say_v the_o
call_v honourable_a among_o all_o man_n 4._o hebr._n 13._o 4._o and_o unto_o the_o corinthian_n it_o be_v write_v 9_o 1._o cor._n 7._o 9_o they_o that_o do_v not_o contain_v let_v they_o marry_v ibid._n ibid._n and_o it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v than_o to_o burn_v but_o they_o by_o their_o decree_n and_o exposition_n exclude_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n from_o marriage_n namely_o all_o the_o holy_a ministry_n 4._o exod._n 20._o 4._o the_o law_n of_o god_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v unto_o ourselves_o image_n to_o worship_v they_o these_o man_n command_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v have_v and_o worship_v 16._o col._n 2._o 16._o paul_n say_v let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_v these_o in_o their_o interpretation_n have_v pervert_v this_o liberty_n and_o have_v bring_v in_o a_o most_o severe_a or_o rather_o ridiculous_a and_o superstitious_a choice_n of_o meat_n the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v decree_v that_o we_o by_o faith_n be_v justify_v without_o work_n 28._o rom._n 3._o 28._o they_o by_o their_o exposition_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v also_o justify_v by_o work_n therefore_o their_o gloss_n be_v very_o much_o against_o the_o text_n neither_o be_v their_o interpretation_n any_o thing_n else_o than_o corruption_n where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v set_v our_o mind_n on_o high_a their_o interpretation_n draw_v we_o downward_o this_o power_n of_o expound_v the_o scripture_n have_v the_o pope_n therefore_o draw_v only_o unto_o themselves_o or_o unto_o the_o counsel_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o may_v after_o their_o own_o pleasure_n bring_v in_o strange_a opinion_n into_o the_o church_n and_o contend_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n howsoever_o they_o think_v good_a neither_o do_v the_o jewish_a high_a priest_n scribes_z and_z pharisées_fw-fr otherwise_o behave_v themselves_o but_o christ_n receive_v not_o their_o perverse_a interpretation_n interpretation_n matt._n 15._o 4._o etc._n etc._n christ_n reject_v false_a interpretation_n god_n command_v in_o the_o law_n that_o child_n shall_v obey_v their_o parent_n but_o the_o priest_n be_v drive_v by_o covetousness_n take_v away_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o commandment_n in_o absolve_a of_o child_n from_o the_o burden_n of_o maintain_v their_o parent_n persuade_v they_o to_o offer_v excellent_a and_o scotfree_a gift_n the_o which_o shall_v profit_v their_o parent_n much_o more_o than_o sustenance_n the_o lord_n have_v cry_v out_o also_o against_o this_o crafty_a interpretation_n he_o testify_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v make_v void_a 33._o matt._n 5._o 33._o also_o by_o their_o exposition_n they_o have_v lessen_v the_o strength_n of_o other_o and_o have_v teach_v that_o some_o be_v of_o strength_n and_o some_o feeble_a here_o also_o the_o lord_n have_v gainsay_v &_o have_v confute_v their_o sophistical_a interpretation_n 20._o matt._n 5._o 20._o they_o also_o teach_v that_o man_n satisfy_v the_o law_n if_o only_o they_o conform_v themselves_o unto_o the_o same_o christ_n reject_v these_o perverse_a gloss_n have_v declare_v that_o the_o law_n require_v not_o only_o outward_a work_n but_o also_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o adversary_n shall_v compel_v we_o without_o judgement_n to_o repose_v ourselves_o in_o their_o exposition_n augustine_n write_v book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n where_o he_o teach_v many_o way_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n but_o among_o they_o there_o be_v not_o one_o wherein_o he_o send_v we_o unto_o the_o pope_n or_o unto_o the_o church_n in_o obscure_a thing_n he_o will_v we_o to_o use_v the_o skillfulness_n of_o tongue_n to_o consider_v those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o and_o which_o follow_v to_o expound_v a_o doubtful_a place_n by_o another_o place_n which_o be_v more_o easy_a and_o manifest_a and_o such_o like_a thing_n thou_o can_v no_o where_n find_v in_o the_o father_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o this_o or_o that_o council_n have_v interpret_v the_o same_o after_o this_o or_o that_o manner_n 14_o but_o hereat_o they_o cry_v out_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o christ_n have_v say_v 17_o mat._n 18._o 17_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n understand_v how_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v hear_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v unto_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o christ_n speak_v not_o there_o as_o touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o of_o brotherlie_a correction_n but_o set_v this_o answer_n aside_o i_o say_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v hear_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o answer_v or_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o it_o bring_v forth_o only_a the_o devise_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n we_o must_v with_o deaf_a ear_n pretermit_v the_o same_o and_o special_o then_o when_o it_o set_v forth_o thing_n that_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o conclude_v we_o include_v the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o which_o as_o a_o firm_a and_o certain_a rule_n be_v fix_v unto_o it_o but_o as_o concern_v power_n above_o the_o scripture_n subject_a the_o old_a father_n acknowledge_v not_o any_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v subject_a which_o these_o man_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o old_a father_n neither_o acknowledge_v nor_o seek_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o the_o history_n of_o theodoretus_n show_v constantine_n command_v the_o father_n that_o be_v assemble_v together_o to_o define_v the_o controversy_n as_o touch_v one_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n there_o none_o withstand_v he_o in_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o her_o own_o authority_n ought_v to_o judge_v the_o controversy_n because_o the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o shall_v rather_o have_v they_o in_o her_o power_n neither_o do_v they_o complain_v that_o the_o emperor_n pluck_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o church_n see_v it_o subject_v the_o same_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n 15_o but_o they_o cry_v out_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n 15_o how_o that_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v which_o paul_n say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 15_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n unto_o timothy_n here_o i_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n must_v not_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o the_o church_n do_v urge_v confirm_v and_o compare_v her_o authority_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o case_n do_v not_o so_o stand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o itself_o most_o firm_a it_o endure_v for_o ever_o neither_o have_v it_o any_o need_n to_o be_v prop_v up_o by_o man_n nay_o rather_o it_o sustain_v all_o thing_n heaven_n and_o earth_n pass_v 18._o matt._n 5._o 18._o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o pass_v but_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o it_o as_o it_o preach_v retain_v and_o keep_v it_o within_o itself_o as_o it_o defend_v and_o maintain_v it_o neither_o be_v the_o word_n hear_v without_o it_o but_o not_o as_o though_o that_o ground_n do_v yield_v strength_n or_o authority_n unto_o the_o word_n waver_v or_o like_a to_o fall_v so_o far_o forth_o then_o as_o it_o speak_v out_o of_o it_o it_o err_v not_o nor_o can_v err_v faith_n whether_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o speak_v or_o deal_n without_o it_o not_o only_o it_o can_v err_v but_o it_o do_v err_v but_o our_o man_n on_o god_n name_n do_v also_o attribute_v this_o unto_o pope_n that_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o call_v it_o they_o can_v err_v when_o as_o nevertheless_o it_o must_v certain_o appear_v that_o john_n the_o xxj_o xx●_n the_o heresy_n of_o pope_n john_n the_o xx●_n most_o shameful_o fall_v see_v he_o affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n perish_v together_o with_o the_o body_n or_o as_o some_o more_o modest_o say_v do_v sleep_n and_o shall_v final_o be_v raise_v up_o when_o as_o our_o body_n also_o shall_v rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a at_o the_o latter_a day_n neither_o do_v the_o bishop_n nor_o cardidinal_n who_o they_o say_v do_v represent_v the_o church_n resist_v the_o pope_n that_o err_v so_o soulie_o and_o shameful_o the_o school_n of_o paris_n resist_v he_o and_o so_o inform_v the_o french_a king_n of_o his_o error_n as_o he_o forbid_v all_o his_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o pope_n
5._o in_o baptism_n water_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o regeneration_n baptism_n the_o analogy_n of_o sign_n to_o the_o thing_n in_o baptism_n and_o because_o the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v preserve_v that_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v for_o the_o accident_n of_o water_n will_v not_o be_v convenient_a and_o in_o take_v away_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o proposition_n 26_o mat._n 26._o 26_o this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o abuse_v the_o verb_n substantine_n be_v for_o it_o be_v transubstantiate_v turn_v or_o change_v from_o one_o to_o another_o for_o while_o they_o utter_v those_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o bread_n be_v not_o yet_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o if_o they_o will_v understand_v be_v in_o his_o own_o true_a signification_n they_o shall_v utter_v that_o which_o be_v false_a therefore_o among_o the_o schoolman_n some_o grant_n that_o the_o verb_n be_v shall_v be_v take_v for_o to_o be_v make_v to_o be_v change_v or_o turn_v moreover_o they_o attribute_v this_o power_n or_o efficacy_n unto_o those_o few_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o so_o often_o as_o they_o be_v repeat_v this_o change_n be_v make_v and_o yet_o have_v they_o not_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n any_o word_n thereof_o and_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v speak_v those_o word_n which_o paul_n matthew_n mark_v or_o luke_n have_v they_o will_v think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o consecration_n for_o they_o ascribe_v all_o the_o virtue_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o their_o own_o canon_n but_o we_o know_v that_o then_o the_o sacrament_n be_v when_o we_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v and_o command_v to_o be_v do_v but_o he_o not_o only_o speak_v those_o word_n but_o he_o also_o give_v thanks_n he_o break_v the_o bread_n he_o do_v eat_v and_o he_o reach_v it_o unto_o other_o to_o eat_v and_o where_o as_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n here_o all_o do_v concur_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o must_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v intermit_v i_o pass_v over_o that_o they_o be_v ignorant_a whether_o consecration_n be_v have_v in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n or_o in_o prayer_n further_o they_o set_v themselves_o in_o great_a peril_n for_o it_o may_v be_v that_o a_o ill_a sacrificer_n or_o false_a worker_n do_v not_o speak_v the_o word_n do_v change_n or_o invert_v they_o moreover_o see_v a_o intent_n as_o they_o speak_v of_o he_o that_o consecrate_v be_v require_v it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o in_o do_v of_o these_o thing_n think_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o consecration_n and_o perhaps_o that_o he_o be_v mind_v not_o to_o have_v it_o do_v 12_o they_o fall_v into_o many_o absurdity_n once_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n be_v in_o many_o place_n as_o once_o and_o those_o inexplicable_a for_o therein_o they_o affirm_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o body_n and_o that_o in_o infinite_a place_n together_o and_o at_o one_o very_a time_n but_o they_o say_v that_o this_o be_v no_o hindrance_n unto_o they_o because_o though_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o by_o the_o way_n of_o quantity_n and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v wonder_v at_o how_o they_o place_v a_o body_n and_o a_o quantity_n and_o to_o be_v true_o present_a and_o yet_o not_o by_o the_o way_n of_o quantity_n and_o see_v they_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v true_o present_a and_o corporal_o and_o carnal_o as_o they_o say_v but_o not_o locallie_o who_o perceive_v not_o that_o these_o be_v argument_n invent_v to_o deceive_v objection_n a_o objection_n they_o object_n that_o this_o be_v give_v to_o the_o humane_a body_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n ambrose_n a_o miracle_n of_o ambrose_n who_o be_v at_o milan_n be_v present_a at_o turon_n in_o the_o funeral_n of_o saint_n martin_n and_o there_o be_v see_v why_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o this_o which_o ambrose_n have_v be_v rather_o grant_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o take_v as_o grant_v which_o we_o grant_v not_o for_o it_o may_v be_v answer_n a_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o ambrose_n and_o that_o it_o seem_v unto_o he_o he_o be_v present_a at_o those_o funeral_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o angel_n he_o be_v perhaps_o represent_v in_o they_o and_o unto_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n but_o that_o his_o body_n be_v very_o in_o both_o place_n together_o we_o will_v not_o grant_v further_o we_o may_v leave_v it_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o miracle_n recite_v to_o consider_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o no._n objection_n an_o other_o objection_n they_o oppose_v again_o as_o touch_v soul_n that_o whereas_o they_o be_v creature_n yet_o each_o one_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o all_o the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n answer_n a_o answer_n but_o they_o deal_v very_o unwiselie_o which_o compare_v a_o spirit_n with_o a_o body_n and_o that_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o body_n which_o they_o may_v lawful_o do_v unto_o a_o spirit_n christ_n say_v plain_o 39_o luk._n 24._o 39_o a_o spirit_n have_v no_o flesh_n and_o bone_n whereby_o he_o put_v no_o small_a difference_n between_o they_o further_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o that_o be_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o body_n which_o our_o soul_n have_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v in_o diverse_a place_n because_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o angel_n can_v be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o time_n for_o they_o be_v creature_n and_o therefore_o of_o a_o power_n limit_v and_o definite_a 13_o there_o follow_v also_o many_o other_o inconvenience_n transubstantiation_n absurdity_n which_o follow_v transubstantiation_n because_o if_o the_o mouse_n have_v gnaw_v these_o sacred_a host_n they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o eat_v accident_n and_o if_o they_o be_v fill_v and_o satisfy_v this_o also_o shall_v be_v a_o work_n of_o accident_n and_o if_o it_o happen_v that_o a_o sacrifice_a priest_n do_v utter_v those_o word_n over_o a_o great_a vessel_n of_o wine_n and_o over_o a_o great_a chest_n full_a of_o bread_n and_o that_o thou_o demand_v what_o fill_v the_o vessel_n what_o the_o chest_n or_o what_o also_o fill_v the_o belly_n of_o they_o which_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v thereof_o they_o will_v answer_v accident_n and_o because_o those_o that_o eat_v be_v sustain_v some_o of_o they_o dare_v to_o say_v that_o god_n creat_v in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o eater_n and_o drinker_n either_o phlegm_n or_o some_o other_o humour_n which_o may_v be_v convert_v into_o blood_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v nourish_v but_o and_o if_o that_o that_o sacrament_n be_v burn_v as_o it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o hesychius_n which_o thing_n he_o himself_o testify_v upon_o leviticus_fw-la and_o the_o very_a same_o have_v origen_n upon_o the_o same_o book_n undoubted_o ash_n will_v remain_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n shall_v a_o substance_n be_v procreate_v out_o of_o accident_n in_o like_a manner_n worm_n may_v arise_v of_o the_o bread_n consecrate_v &_o there_o also_o they_o will_v say_v that_o substance_n be_v bring_v forth_o of_o accident_n albeit_o as_o they_o be_v bold_a fellow_n some_o of_o they_o fain_o that_o the_o former_a matter_n be_v by_o miracle_n bring_v again_o by_o reason_n whereof_o these_o thing_n may_v happen_v but_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a after_o this_o manner_n to_o breed_v and_o feign_v miracle_n every_o divine_a may_v escape_v as_o he_o will_n for_o to_o every_o intricate_a matter_n he_o will_v apply_v a_o miracle_n and_o so_o will_v he_o unwind_v himself_o out_o of_o all_o argument_n which_o shall_v be_v object_v against_o he_o these_o thing_n they_o affirm_v not_o only_o by_o miracle_n but_o also_o by_o subtle_a sophistical_a argument_n as_o scotus_n when_o he_o be_v urge_v in_o the_o utter_n of_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o he_o shall_v tell_v we_o what_o be_v show_v in_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o proposition_n at_o length_n answer_v body_n what_o scotus_n and_o other_o affirm_v to_o be_v show_v in_o the_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o there_o be_v demonstration_n make_v of_o some_o singular_a or_o particular_a thing_n of_o a_o more_o general_a substance_n which_o together_o with_o that_o which_o be_v affirm_v thereof_o do_v show_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n or_o as_o the_o schoolman_n say_v be_v of_o the_o self_n same_o supposition_n neither_o do_v those_o thing_n differ_v one_o from_o another_o which_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o subject_n and_o that_o which_o thereof_o be_v affirm_v except_o it_o be_v by_o a_o diverse_a manner_n of_o conceive_v see_v whereinto_o they_o rush_v and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o they_o escape_v not_o for_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o answer_v by_o they_o what_o be_v show_v when_o it_o
the_o body_n of_o christ_n yet_o nevertheless_o we_o grant_v that_o this_o comparison_n be_v general_o take_v for_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o sacramental_a change_n even_o in_o this_o sacrament_n but_o and_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v that_o thou_o will_v take_v this_o similitude_n according_a as_o it_o be_v bring_v that_o so_o true_o be_v the_o bread_n change_v into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o in_o the_o meat_n and_o sustenance_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v convert_v into_o his_o flesh_n while_o he_o live_v here_o there_o will_v follow_v a_o absurdity_n very_o repugnant_a unto_o thy_o own_o opinion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o sign_n must_v not_o be_v retain_v in_o this_o sacrament_n because_o they_o be_v not_o there_o keep_v in_o the_o sustenance_n of_o christ_n while_o he_o live_v here_o furthermore_o the_o same_o interpreter_n upon_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o john_n write_v upon_o these_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v do_v while_o he_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n transelemented_a and_o mingle_v with_o us._n where_o again_o thou_o see_v that_o he_o as_o do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n affirm_v so_o great_a a_o change_n of_o we_o into_o christ_n as_o he_o write_v that_o we_o be_v transelementate_v into_o he_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o theophilact_n 55_o among_o the_o latter_a man_n hugo_n to_o anselmus_n and_o hugo_n they_o allege_v anselmus_n hugo_n and_o richardus_fw-la and_o the_o victorine_n howbeit_o see_v in_o their_o time_n the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v obtrude_v they_o with_o their_o writing_n serve_v the_o time_n neither_o ought_v the_o new_a invention_n of_o these_o man_n be_v periudiciall_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o old_a father_n but_o among_o other_o they_o seem_v to_o make_v great_a account_n of_o one_o and_o that_o be_v of_o johannes_n damascenus_n who_o in_o the_o 4._o damascen_n to_o john_n damascen_n book_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o 14._o chapter_n write_v most_o ample_o of_o this_o matter_n but_o i_o find_v that_o this_o man_n live_v under_o leo_n isauricus_n emperor_n of_o greece_n live_v in_o what_o age_n he_o live_v and_o between_o gregorius_n magnus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o john_n there_o be_v welnéere_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n and_o when_o as_o now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n many_o superstition_n and_o invention_n of_o man_n be_v heap_v up_o in_o the_o church_n all_o thing_n grow_v to_o be_v worse_o and_o worse_o wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o this_o damascen_n incline_v unto_o many_o superstition_n and_o untruth_n diut●i●_n the_o judgement_n of_o damascen_n in_o matter_n of_o diut●i●_n and_o of_o how_o great_a judgement_n he_o be_v aswell_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n as_o also_o in_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o have_v a_o proof_n for_o he_o marvellous_o favour_v image_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o they_o enter_v into_o great_a danger_n and_o in_o this_o self_n same_o four_o book_n he_o write_v a_o particular_a chapter_n of_o that_o matter_n wherein_o he_o not_o only_o will_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v but_o also_o be_v worship_v and_o honour_v moreover_o he_o have_v in_o so_o great_a estimation_n the_o relic_n of_o saint_n depart_v as_o upon_o they_o also_o he_o spend_v a_o whole_a chapter_n wherein_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o call_v they_o the_o fountain_n of_o god_n gift_n and_o he_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v by_o faith_n to_o worship_v the_o saint_n which_o say_v be_v intolerable_a see_v faith_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n and_o his_o word_n he_o have_v a_o sermon_n of_o purgatory_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o traianus_n the_o emperor_n and_o idolater_n and_o persecutor_n of_o martyr_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n and_o that_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o gregory_n and_o the_o falconilla_n also_o a_o idolatrous_a woman_n be_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o a_o certain_a other_o man_n save_v when_o she_o have_v be_v now_o dead_a and_o detain_v in_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n and_o he_o bring_v in_o a_o fable_n of_o one_o macarius_n which_o talk_v with_o the_o skull_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n of_o who_o he_o hear_v that_o in_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v torment_v in_o pain_n be_v in_o more_o ease_n and_o he_o sprinkle_v all_o his_o sermon_n with_o these_o fable_n and_o the_o selfsame_o man_n when_o he_o write_v of_o the_o resurrection_n indevour_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n where_o we_o read_v that_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o noah_n thou_o shall_v not_o eat_v flesh_n with_o the_o blood_n 4._o gen._n 9_o 4._o for_o your_o life_n will_v i_o require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o beast_n he_o will_v require_v they_o say_v he_o at_o the_o resurrection_n yet_o forsooth_o beast_n do_v not_o die_v for_o man_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o know_v not_o the_o law_n make_v by_o god_n in_o exodus_fw-la 28._o exo._n 21._o 28._o where_o he_o command_v the_o ox_n to_o be_v slay_v which_o shall_v push_v with_o his_o horn_n and_o kill_v a_o man_n and_o in_o the_o chapter_n de_fw-fr virginitate_fw-la he_o write_v if_o adam_n have_v not_o sin_v man_n have_v not_o be_v join_v together_o in_o matrimony_n for_o procreation_n sake_n and_o because_o he_o see_v that_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n 28._o gen._n 1._o 28._o increase_n and_o multiply_v be_v against_o he_o he_o say_v that_o perhaps_o man_n may_v have_v multiply_v by_o another_o part_n of_o the_o body_n among_o the_o school_n divine_v none_o will_v have_v speak_v these_o word_n basil_n the_o same_o man_n wre_v basil_n the_o same_o man_n wre_v basill_n for_o when_o he_o perceive_v he_o to_o say_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v pattern_n or_o example_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o expound_v he_o that_o he_o mean_v before_o consecration_n and_o this_o be_v most_o absurd_a for_o before_o consecration_n they_o have_v no_o more_o in_o they_o than_o other_o common_a meat_n and_o if_o they_o shall_v so_o signify_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o shall_v be_v already_o sacrament_n before_o the_o utter_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n moreover_o in_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o greek_n they_o open_o pray_v after_o consecration_n that_o the_o bread_n may_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o namely_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v in_o the_o mass_n of_o basill_n that_o those_o word_n be_v put_v after_o consecration_n and_o in_o our_o canon_n if_o it_o be_v well_o consider_v it_o be_v name_v bread_n after_o consecration_n 56_o but_o now_o must_v we_o see_v his_o argument_n the_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n for_o see_v he_o be_v able_a by_o his_o word_n to_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o bring_v forth_o plantes_n beast_n bird_n and_o fish_n why_o may_v he_o not_o of_o bread_n make_v his_o own_o body_n which_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v most_o weak_a neither_o be_v the_o disputation_n now_o as_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o god_n for_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o god_n can_v turn_v bread_n into_o flesh_n but_o the_o whole_a contention_n be_v whether_o he_o will_v do_v it_o or_o no._n another_o of_o his_o argument_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n for_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v a_o figure_n or_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n but_o it_o be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n own_o body_n but_o unto_o this_o argument_n we_o have_v before_o answer_v and_o if_o this_o man_n when_o he_o deni_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n do_v mean_v this_o absolute_o he_o have_v almost_o all_o the_o father_n against_o he_o who_o in_o this_o place_n do_v acknowledge_v a_o figure_n but_o if_o he_o understande_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o figure_n only_o to_o wit_n a_o frustrate_a or_o void_a sign_n that_o also_o do_v we_o willing_o grant_v albeit_o he_o mingle_v certain_a word_n in_o his_o writing_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o he_o mean_v not_o so_o gross_o as_o he_o make_v semblance_n for_o for_o he_o say_v defend_v damascen_n after_o some_o sort_n defend_v that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o communion_n be_v no_o simple_a bread_n but_o it_o have_v the_o godhead_n join_v with_o it_o which_o word_n we_o will_v willing_o admit_v for_o we_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v here_o common_a or_o simple_a bread_n but_o it_o be_v now_o sanctify_a and_o turn_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o it_o
according_a to_o their_o mind_n some_o be_v make_v governor_n over_o country_n and_o other_o some_o be_v displace_v dioclesian_n a_o say_n of_o dioclesian_n wherefore_o dioclesian_n say_v a_o good_a wise_a and_o wary_a emperor_n be_v oftentimes_o set_v to_o sale_n by_o his_o subject_n the_o prince_n be_v at_o home_n in_o his_o palace_n they_o that_o be_v familiar_a with_o he_o accuse_v and_o defend_v before_o he_o who_o they_o will_n yea_o and_o among_o the_o roman_n the_o senator_n be_v many_o time_n circumvent_v the_o course_n of_o justice_n be_v by_o many_o deceit_n hinder_v neither_o do_v it_o much_o force_n whether_o it_o be_v do_v by_o violence_n or_o by_o guile_n because_o the_o public_a weal_n be_v hurt_v both_o way_n and_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n contemn_v and_o thus_o far_o as_o touch_v these_o thing_n 27_o neither_o must_v we_o here_o pass_v over_o that_o which_o have_v be_v often_o say_v that_o the_o magistrate_n must_v not_o be_v obey_v if_o he_o command_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o when_o he_o so_o do_v he_o be_v no_o magistrate_n 3._o rom._n 13._o 3._o because_o as_o paul_n say_v he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o good_a so_o as_o if_o he_o command_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o that_o behalf_n he_o be_v not_o his_o minister_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o sometime_o grievous_a troublesome_a and_o difficult_a thing_n be_v command_v which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o these_o case_n we_o must_v obey_v for_o we_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v our_o master_n though_o they_o be_v severe_a so_o that_o they_o command_v nothing_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o if_o they_o do_v we_o must_v answer_v they_o with_o the_o sentence_n of_o peter_n who_o say_v 29._o acts._n 4._o 29._o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n nabuchad-naze_a will_v have_v his_o image_n woorship_v 18._o dan._n 3._o 18._o the_o faithful_a hebrew_n answer_v thy_o image_n o_o king_n we_o will_v not_o worship_n 7._o 2._o mach._n 7._o antiochus_n command_v the_o hebrew_n woman_n to_o eat_v swine_n flesh_n but_o she_o choose_v to_o die_v together_o with_o her_o seven_o son_n rather_o than_o to_o commit_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n also_o the_o martyr_n both_o in_o the_o old_a time_n and_o also_o in_o our_o time_n suffer_v most_o extreme_a punishment_n and_o most_o cruel_a death_n because_o they_o will_v not_o sin_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n eusebius_n eusebius_n eusebius_n caesariensis_n write_v that_o constantius_n the_o father_n of_o constantine_n feign_v upon_o a_o time_n as_o though_o he_o will_v put_v out_o all_o the_o christian_n first_o a_o example_n of_o constantius_n the_o first_o which_o will_v stand_v to_o their_o religion_n out_o of_o their_o honour_n and_o office_n but_o they_o which_o be_v godly_a in_o deed_n free_o give_v over_o their_o dignity_n and_o choose_v rather_o to_o leave_v their_o honour_n than_o to_o depart_v from_o christ_n but_o this_o turn_v to_o their_o good_a for_o the_o emperor_n embrace_v they_o and_o those_o which_o have_v deny_v christ_n for_o to_o keep_v their_o dignity_n he_o utterlie_o remoove_v from_o his_o person_n say_v that_o they_o also_o will_v not_o be_v faithful_a unto_o he_o which_o be_v unfaithful_a to_o god_n arrian_n constantius_n the_o second_o a_o arrian_n afterward_o constantius_n the_o son_n of_o constantinus_n be_v a_o arrian_n go_v about_o to_o draw_v the_o faithful_a bishop_n to_o his_o heresy_n but_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o be_v banish_v than_o to_o follow_v that_o wicked_a purpose_n of_o the_o emperor_n afterward_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la open_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o idol_n apostata_fw-la julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la &_o labour_v to_o drive_v the_o christian_n to_o the_o ethnic_a religion_n and_o woorship_v yet_o such_o as_o be_v godly_a in_o deed_n hold_v the_o religion_n of_o christ_n more_o dear_a and_o near_o unto_o they_o than_o their_o life_n yea_o and_o achilles_n in_o homer_n say_v achilles_n achilles_n i_o will_v obey_v prince_n but_o yet_o so_o they_o command_v thing_n honest_a and_o just_a and_o these_o thing_n not_o only_o belong_v to_o subject_n but_o also_o to_o inferior_a magistrate_n power_n of_o mean_a or_o inferior_a power_n for_o what_o if_o the_o superior_a prince_n command_v the_o inferior_a magistrate_n to_o receive_v the_o mass_n in_o their_o city_n undoubted_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o obey_v if_o a_o man_n will_v say_v he_o be_v the_o superior_a power_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v obey_v i_o will_v answer_v in_o thing_n that_o be_v civil_a and_o humane_a let_v they_o obey_v asmuch_o as_n behoove_v but_o in_o no_o wise_a against_o god_n we_o must_v always_o run_v unto_o that_o principle_n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la unumquodque_fw-la est_fw-la tale_n id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la est_fw-la magis_fw-la tale_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o whereby_o a_o thing_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v be_v the_o more_o such_o itself_o and_o therefore_o if_o we_o obey_v the_o magistrate_n for_o god_n cause_n much_o more_o must_v god_n himself_o be_v obey_v so_o then_o the_o inferior_a magistrate_n ought_v not_o in_o such_o case_n to_o have_v a_o regard_n what_o the_o superior_a power_n charge_v but_o what_o god_n himself_o have_v command_v religion_n whether_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v expect_v in_o the_o reform_n of_o religion_n 28_o there_o be_v some_o which_o say_v that_o before_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o magistrate_n as_o touch_v religion_n we_o must_v expect_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n they_o which_o thus_o speak_v let_v they_o consider_v that_o christ_n never_o so_o command_v every_o man_n for_o himself_o be_v whole_o bind_v to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n whether_o other_o consent_n or_o dissent_v if_o the_o goodman_n of_o a_o house_n have_v many_o servant_n which_o he_o command_v to_o do_v his_o work_n in_o the_o country_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n but_o some_o of_o they_o when_o their_o master_n be_v absent_a will_n loiter_v ought_v the_o rest_n therefore_o to_o be_v idle_a because_o some_o consent_n not_o to_o their_o common_a business_n consent_n paul_n wait_v not_o for_o a_o consent_n do_v paul_n when_o he_o be_v call_v to_o preach_v christ_n tarry_v for_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o other_o brethren_n no_o true_o but_o as_o he_o write_v to_o the_o galat._n 15._o gal._n 1._o 15._o when_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o reveal_v unto_o i_o his_o son_n that_o i_o shall_v preach_v he_o among_o the_o gentile_n i_o do_v not_o straightway_o ask_v counsel_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n neither_o go_v i_o to_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v before_o i_o but_o i_o go_v into_o arabia_n wherefore_o he_o tarry_v not_o for_o the_o consent_n of_o other_o but_o straightway_o obey_v his_o call_n so_o also_o ought_v we_o to_o do_v after_o that_o god_n have_v open_v unto_o we_o his_o truth_n we_o must_v not_o tarry_v for_o when_o a_o consent_n must_v be_v attend_v for_o in_o deed_n if_o the_o thing_n be_v doubtful_a and_o dark_a we_o must_v tarry_v for_o a_o consent_n but_o our_o cause_n be_v manifest_a and_o without_o all_o obscureness_n which_o if_o we_o will_v omit_v till_o a_o consent_n be_v have_v the_o thing_n itself_o be_v lose_v and_o good_a occasion_n break_v off_o tiberius_n will_v have_v bring_v christ_n into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o god_n howbeit_o he_o think_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o senate_n shall_v be_v have_v but_o the_o senate_n will_v not_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o while_o consent_n be_v expect_v christ_n can_v not_o be_v count_v among_o the_o god_n whereas_o tiberius_n have_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v by_o himself_o but_o i_o pray_v you_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o for_o who_o consent_n will_v they_o tarry_v for_o the_o bishops_n consent_n but_o they_o no_o doubt_n will_v never_o consent_v since_o they_o be_v swear_v enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n 29_o now_o let_v we_o return_v unto_o the_o inferior_a magistrate_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v before_o 42_o look_v part_n 2._o cap._n 4._o ar_n 42_o we_o must_v remember_v what_o god_n have_v command_v child_n concern_v their_o parent_n honour_n thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n 12._o exo._n 20._o 12._o by_o which_o word_n undoubted_o be_v command_v honour_n and_o obedience_n towards_o high_a power_n for_o they_o have_v the_o place_n of_o parent_n towards_o the_o inferior_a magistrate_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o christ_n have_v pronounce_v as_o touch_v this_o matter_n 37_o mat._n 10._o 37_o he_o that_o love_v say_v he_o father_n or_o mother_n more_o than_o i_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o i_o the_o same_o without_o doubt_n must_v we_o think_v of_o the_o magistrate_n which_o
somewhat_o to_o yield_v but_o severity_n be_v by_o no_o mean_n turn_v and_o sometime_o the_o one_o be_v to_o be_v use_v and_o sometime_o the_o other_o if_o there_o happen_v a_o outrageous_a cause_n severity_n must_v be_v use_v not_o clemency_n sometime_o the_o cause_n be_v make_v the_o light_a by_o circumstance_n then_o there_o be_v place_n for_o clemency_n doubtless_o clemency_n although_o it_o bend_v the_o common_a law_n yet_o do_v it_o nothing_o against_o right_a reason_n see_v it_o have_v a_o consideration_n of_o the_o circumstance_n and_o according_a to_o that_o it_o appoint_v punishment_n and_o when_o the_o merciful_a man_n remit_v any_o part_n of_o the_o punishment_n this_o ●ée_n judge_v that_o he_o who_o he_o forgive_v ought_v not_o to_o suffer_v any_o more_o for_o he_o respect_v not_o the_o word_n but_o the_o meaning_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o law_n nevertheless_o when_o the_o punishment_n due_a be_v altogether_o remit_v it_o be_v no_o clemency_n but_o pardon_n and_o that_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v for_o from_o god_n alone_o which_o the_o jew_n also_o understand_v when_o they_o say_v 20_o mark_n 2._o 20_o who_o be_v this_o that_o forgive_v sin_n yet_o do_v the_o papist_n brag_n that_o they_o and_o they_o can_v give_v a_o pardon_n of_o sin_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v if_o so_o the_o case_n stand_v then_o may_v other_o prince_n use_v clemency_n but_o the_o jew_n may_v not_o because_o they_o use_v the_o law_n of_o god_n i_o answer_v 13_o how_o far_o forth_o the_o jew_n may_v use_v clemency_n levi._n 19_o 35_o deu._n 25._o 13_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v merciful_a yet_o not_o otherwise_o than_o where_o no_o certain_a punishment_n be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o leviticus_fw-la and_o in_o deuteronomie_n it_o be_v command_v that_o weight_n shall_v be_v just_a and_o measure_n right_a he_o that_o have_v do_v otherwise_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v yet_o no_o certain_a punishment_n be_v appoint_v wherefore_o in_o that_o case_n there_o be_v place_n for_o the_o clemency_n and_o severity_n of_o the_o judge_n another_o law_n there_o be_v 2._o deut._n 25._o 2._o that_o he_o which_o have_v deserve_v to_o be_v beat_v with_o s●aves_n shall_v be_v punish_v with_o no_o more_o but_o forty_o stripe_n in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o the_o party_n shall_v be_v punish_v with_o few_o or_o many_o stripe_n within_o that_o number_n 2d_o exo._n 20._o 2d_o there_o be_v another_o law_n that_o the_o servant_n which_o have_v sell_v himself_o into_o the_o power_n of_o another_o man_n shall_v be_v grievous_o punish_v but_o if_o his_o master_n have_v oppress_v he_o with_o violence_n there_o be_v no_o punishment_n determine_v by_o the_o law_n herein_o also_o be_v place_n for_o the_o clemency_n of_o the_o judge_n wherefore_o not_o in_o vain_a be_v clemency_n often_o repeat_v unto_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v the_o same_o both_o in_o the_o humane_a law_n set_v forth_o by_o they_o as_o i_o have_v say_v and_o in_o the_o divine_a law_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o punishment_n be_v not_o prescribe_v by_o the_o law_n 28_o and_o as_o touch_v the_o clemency_n of_o augustus_n caesar_n i_o answer_v caesar_n a_o example_n of_o augustus_n caesar_n that_o that_o law_n which_o we_o have_v ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la maiestatis_fw-la be_v humane_a for_o by_o what_o punishment_n conspirator_n must_v be_v afflict_v it_o be_v decree_v by_o prince_n and_o so_o that_o law_n may_v be_v mitigate_v by_o he_o he_o judge_v it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a if_o he_o have_v gréevouslie_o rebuke_v cinna_n and_o assure_o we_o read_v in_o that_o history_n that_o he_o be_v great_o vex_v and_o therefore_o he_o judge_v it_o better_o to_o remit_v somewhat_o of_o the_o punishment_n but_o how_o small_a a_o portion_n must_v be_v remit_v caesar_n just_a moderation_n do_v declare_v but_o humane_a law_n when_o they_o follow_v the_o prescript_n of_o nature_n must_v be_v account_v the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o to_o put_v a_o murderer_n to_o death_n herein_o must_v nothing_o be_v remit_v by_o the_o judge_n doubtless_o clemency_n be_v a_o habit_n wherewith_o by_o the_o gentleness_n of_o the_o mind_n we_o mitigate_v legal_a punishment_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o justice_n 22._o a_o example_n of_o david_n 2._o sa._n 19_o 22._o david_n forgive_v semei_n i_o grant_v but_o yet_o when_o he_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a that_o he_o shall_v go_v unpunished_a he_o command_v solomon_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o suffer_v his_o gray_a hair_n to_o escape_v unpunished_a unto_o the_o grave_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a for_o david_n himself_o to_o kill_v he_o for_o first_o semei_n be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o saul_n he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v move_v with_o hatred_n against_o his_o posterity_n further_o he_o have_v confirm_v his_o word_n of_o who_o he_o have_v be_v call_v before_o a_o bloody_a man_n last_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o he_o to_o disturb_v that_o gladness_n and_o gratulation_n of_o the_o people_n after_o this_o sort_n he_o forgive_v joab_n 31._o 1._o king_n 2._o 31._o who_o have_v kill_v two_o better_a man_n for_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v much_o with_o the_o army_n wherefore_o he_o also_o remit_v he_o unto_o solomon_n howbeit_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o david_n sin_v both_o when_o he_o absolve_v amnon_n of_o incest_n and_o absalon_n of_o parricide_n but_o what_o david_n refuse_v to_o do_v that_o do_v god_n himself_o afterward_o by_o himself_o 9_o 2._o sa._n 13._o 29._o 2._o sa._n 18._o 9_o for_o amnon_n be_v slay_v by_o absalon_n and_o absalon_n be_v hang_v on_o a_o tree_n be_v thrust_v through_o by_o joab_n with_o a_o spear_n and_o whereas_o paul_n commend_v onesimus_n unto_o his_o master_n philemon_n paul_n phil._n 9_o a_o example_n of_o paul_n that_o serve_v not_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o philemon_n be_v a_o private_a man_n and_o here_o be_v not_o prescribe_v law_n of_o god_n only_a paul_n pray_v he_o to_o forgive_v private_a injury_n which_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n unto_o all_o christian_n he_o pray_v i_o say_v philemon_n to_o let_v pass_v his_o wrath_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o according_a to_o the_o same_o 15_o deu._n 23._o 15_o for_o in_o deuteronomium_n there_o be_v a_o law_n if_o a_o other_o man_n servant_n shall_v fly_v unto_o thou_o thou_o shall_v not_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o master_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v so_o long_o as_o his_o master_n be_v in_o a_o rage_n and_o unpatientlie_o disquiet_v this_o be_v profitable_a to_o the_o master_n lest_o he_o shall_v overmuch_o feed_v his_o wrath_n and_o unto_o the_o servant_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v overmuch_o punish_v 15._o mat._n 27._o 15._o 29_o but_o the_o fact_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o that_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n they_o release_v unto_o the_o jew_n some_o man_n that_o be_v bind_v and_o condemn_v we_o can_v allow_v roman_n a_o example_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o god_n never_o command_v that_o in_o their_o solemnity_n any_o guilty_a man_n shall_v be_v release_v howbeit_o the_o roman_n by_o this_o mean_v curry_v favour_n with_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o bear_v that_o servitude_n prince_n a_o example_n of_o the_o christian_a prince_n the_o selfsame_o reason_n it_o be_v why_o christian_n prince_n in_o the_o holy_a week_n of_o easter_n will_v open_v the_o prison_n and_o let_v forth_o guilty_a man_n insomuch_o that_o they_o be_v not_o very_o skilful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v bind_v for_o debt_n they_o have_v forgive_v not_o their_o own_o but_o other_o man_n again_o if_o for_o heinous_a offence_n this_o have_v be_v to_o open_v a_o window_n unto_o mischief_n but_o prince_n can_v easy_o hold_v the_o mean_a and_o in_o like_a case_n as_o they_o will_v have_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n either_o to_o be_v poor_a wretch_n or_o else_o after_o a_o sort_n to_o be_v prince_n and_o god_n so_o do_v they_o either_o punish_v the_o guilty_a together_o with_o the_o innocent_a as_o theodosius_n do_v or_o else_o they_o so_o spare_v all_o man_n that_o nothing_o be_v administer_v severelie_o and_o as_o touch_v augustine_n in_o deed_n i_o grant_v that_o he_o entreat_v for_o the_o donatist_n yet_o he_o deny_v it_o not_o to_o be_v lawful_a for_o magistrate_n to_o punish_v heretic_n but_o when_o the_o circumcellion_n or_o idle_a person_n become_v cruel_a against_o the_o christian_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v constrain_v to_o call_v for_o the_o help_n of_o prince_n and_o that_o now_o these_o idle_a person_n be_v punish_v the_o church_n seem_v to_o be_v cruel_a and_o to_o prosecute_v she_o own_o injury_n
be_v retain_v and_o in_o deed_n some_o of_o the_o father_n and_o some_o counsel_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n of_o basil_n and_o chrysostome_n we_o have_v already_o speak_v before_o augustine_n in_o his_o 1._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 7._o chapter_n compare_v the_o sanctuary_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o romulus_n with_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o alaricus_n a_o barbarous_a king_n the_o christian_n have_v immunity_n for_o when_o he_o have_v take_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n by_o force_n he_o will_v have_v they_o all_o to_o be_v safe_a which_o flee_v for_o succour_v unto_o the_o temple_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n romulus_n say_v he_o open_v a_o sanctuary_n to_o increase_v the_o number_n of_o citizen_n alaricus_n to_o preserve_v a_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n which_o be_v more_o to_o be_v praise_v and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n the_o 4._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o christian_n be_v of_o far_o great_a power_n than_o those_o of_o the_o ethnic_n and_o again_o he_o use_v the_o example_n already_o allege_v and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o christian_a sanctuary_n be_v able_a to_o defend_v the_o roman_n be_v now_o captive_n but_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o juno_n which_o be_v at_o troy_n be_v not_o able_a to_o defend_v the_o trojan_n from_o the_o greek_n as_o virgil_n utter_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o aeneidos_n the_o temple_n great_a be_v spoil_v and_o juno_n holy_a door_n be_v brace_v both_o phoenix_n and_o ulysses_n false_a with_o they_o their_o train_n about_o the_o pray_v do_v keep_v and_o greek_n to_o they_o the_o trojan_a riches_n bring_v yea_o moreover_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o same_o alaricus_n restore_v much_o of_o the_o gold_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o vatican_n when_o boniface_n the_o earl_n which_o under_o the_o roman_n govern_v africa_n have_v take_v one_o by_o force_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o 187._o epistle_n to_o the_o same_o boniface_n write_v that_o he_o wonder_v very_o much_o that_o he_o pluck_v a_o man_n from_o they_o and_o he_o will_v he_o safe_o to_o restore_v the_o party_n with_o all_o convenient_a speed_n and_o he_o add_v that_o he_o command_v his_o clergy_n man_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o take_v any_o offering_n out_o of_o his_o house_n and_o that_o he_o have_v now_o excommunicate_v he_o this_o also_o we_o have_v in_o the_o decree_v 17._o quest_n 4._o in_o the_o canon_n miror_fw-la and_o in_o the_o 188._o epistle_n the_o same_o earl_n make_v a_o very_a lowly_a answer_n unto_o augustine_n who_o he_o very_o much_o love_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v gréevouslie_o sin_v behold_v say_v he_o i_o now_o restore_v the_o man_n who_o i_o take_v away_o yet_o let_v it_o be_v know_v to_o thou_o that_o he_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o death_n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o gréevous_a offence_n in_o the_o church_n have_v defence_n in_o right_a of_o the_o sanctuary_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o counsel_n great_o favour_v sanctuary_n the_o council_n of_o arausicanum_n chapt._n the_o 5._o decree_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v pluck_v away_o from_o the_o church_n the_o 4._o council_n of_o aurelianensis_fw-la chapt._n the_o 21._o not_o only_o command_v that_o this_o rite_n shall_v be_v retain_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v which_o shall_v neglect_v to_o do_v it_o the_o 12._o council_n of_o toletanus_n chapter_n the_o 10._o give_v for_o sanctuary_n thirty_o pace_n about_o church_n which_o be_v of_o the_o lesser_a sort_n but_o unto_o the_o metropolitan_o it_o give_v forty_o the_o counsel_n of_o ilerdenum_n &_o triburiensis_n decree_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o same_o thing_n 41_o what_o shall_v we_o then_o judge_v sanctuary_n whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o have_v sanctuary_n must_v sanctuary_n be_v retain_v or_o abrogate_a i_o forasmuch_o as_o i_o perceive_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n retain_v sanctuary_n but_o yet_o of_o very_o straight_a liberty_n and_o do_v see_v also_o that_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n institute_v they_o and_o that_o otherwhiles_o there_o may_v be_v just_a cause_n of_o they_o therefore_o i_o will_v determine_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v retain_v have_v with_o these_o caution_n they_o may_v be_v have_v certain_a caution_n be_v observe_v first_o that_o no_o private_a or_o public_a thing_n be_v hurt_v by_o that_o liberty_n secondlie_o that_o no_o injury_n be_v do_v to_o any_o man_n or_o else_o vice_n nourish_v and_o maintain_v through_o the_o hope_n of_o pardon_n and_o impunity_n further_o it_o seem_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o be_v not_o open_a unto_o all_o kind_n of_o crime_n but_o that_o they_o be_v grant_v for_o some_o certain_a man_n as_o when_o one_o man_n have_v kill_v a_o other_o neither_o witting_o nor_o willing_o or_o else_o if_o a_o good_a man_n without_o his_o own_o fault_n by_o the_o injury_n of_o fortune_n shall_v be_v burden_v with_o debt_n or_o in_o such_o like_a thing_n but_o to_o grant_v sanctuary_n for_o all_o crime_n it_o be_v far_o from_o godliness_n again_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v decree_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v many_o and_o much_o frequent_v that_o man_n may_v behave_v themselves_o the_o more_o circumspect_o and_o gravelie_o in_o their_o dangerous_a action_n 13._o numb_a 35._o 13._o the_o old_a law_n have_v only_o six_o in_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o israel_n but_o in_o our_o region_n there_o be_v always_o many_o for_o the_o canoniste_n have_v marvellous_o indevor_v to_o enlarge_v that_o liberty_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a magistrate_n to_o restrain_v the_o number_n of_o they_o also_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v provide_v that_o they_o which_o be_v detain_v in_o sanctuary_n when_o by_o judgement_n they_o be_v find_v guilty_a may_v not_o easy_o escape_v away_o and_o that_o the_o priest_n or_o monk_n if_o they_o make_v a_o way_n for_o they_o to_o escape_v shall_v undergo_v certain_a punishment_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d howbeit_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o themselves_o also_o be_v sanctuary_n as_o be_v man_n that_o have_v extort_a and_o usurp_a sundry_a form_n of_o exemption_n the_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o exile_n or_o banishment_n end_n in_o 1._o king_n 2_o at_o the_o end_n forsomuch_o as_o abiathar_n be_v banish_v to_o the_o territory_n of_o his_o father_n and_o semei_n command_v to_o keep_v himself_o at_o jerusalem_n the_o which_o be_v kind_n of_o banishmente_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o exile_n or_o banishment_n place_n the_o order_n observe_v in_o the_o treatise_n of_o this_o common_a place_n first_o we_o will_v inquire_v out_o the_o definition_n of_o exile_n second_o we_o will_v search_v which_o be_v the_o kind_n thereof_o and_o three_o shall_v be_v dispute_v whether_o this_o kind_n of_o punishment_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v in_o commonweal_n namely_o for_o expel_v of_o a_o hurtful_a man_n out_o of_o their_o dominion_n when_o they_o may_v punish_v he_o and_o to_o keep_v a_o right_a method_n we_o will_v begin_v at_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v call_v makalash_n exile_n the_o etymology_n of_o exile_n for_o the_o verb_n kalash_n be_v to_o gather_v or_o bind_v together_o therefore_o do_v they_o call_v city_n of_o refuge_n by_o this_o name_n because_o they_o gather_v themselves_o unto_o they_o and_o thither_o be_v the_o fugitive_n draw_v together_o and_o it_o may_v also_o be_v call_v magnahash_n of_o fly_v or_o escape_v away_o the_o grecian_n also_o call_v exile_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o fugiendo_fw-la of_o fly_v away_o the_o latin_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v nonius_n marcellus_n call_v it_o exilium_fw-la because_o they_o that_o so_o fly_v away_o be_v without_o country_n or_o land_n namely_o of_o their_o own_o and_o man_n be_v say_v to_o go_v from_o one_o soil_n to_o a_o other_o when_o they_o flee_v from_o any_o hurt_n or_o punishment_n which_o remain_v for_o they_o at_o home_n but_o they_o which_o study_n to_o comfort_v exile_v man_n do_v call_v their_o exile_n peregrination_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v perceive_v no_o small_a difference_n between_o these_o thing_n for_o peregrination_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n willing_o and_o for_o sundry_a cause_n peregrination_n the_o difference_n between_o exile_n and_o peregrination_n not_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o punishment_n which_o shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o they_o at_o home_n but_o so_o man_n speak_v that_o they_o by_o a_o more_o mild_a word_n may_v extenuate_v that_o punishment_n exhort_v their_o friend_n by_o that_o manner_n of_o speech_n to_o take_v that_o upon_o they_o as_o voluntary_o which_o they_o suffer_v against_o their_o will_n and_o undoubted_o that_o fly_v
will_v have_v to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n be_v call_v miss●…_n and_o of_o the_o grecian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d derive_v whence_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n be_v derive_v the_o first_o they_o say_v be_v a_o hebrew_n word_n twice_o speak_v of_o in_o deuteronomie_n but_o i_o agree_v not_o to_o this_o opinion_n because_o if_o it_o be_v a_o hebrew_n word_n it_o shall_v be_v find_v among_o the_o greek_a writer_n which_o have_v handle_v the_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n for_o the_o latin_a church_n receive_v not_o christian_n profession_n immediate_o from_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n but_o by_o the_o greek_a tongue_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a and_o by_o the_o whole_a new_a testament_n save_v that_o it_o be_v somewhat_o doubt_v of_o we_o touch_v the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n because_o some_o have_v think_v the_o same_o to_o have_v be_v first_o write_v in_o the_o hebrew_n which_o although_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o be_v it_o still_o likely_a that_o the_o latin_n do_v first_o receive_v it_o write_v in_o greek_a not_o in_o hebrew_n and_o that_o which_o i_o affirm_v may_v be_v perceive_v in_o those_o word_n alleluia_n hosianna_n pascha_fw-la messiah_n and_o other_o such_o kind_n of_o word_n which_o thou_o may_v see_v be_v not_o only_o take_v whole_a from_o the_o hebrews_n by_o the_o latin_n but_o also_o from_o the_o greek_n before_o they_o for_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o latin_a church_n wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o hebrew_n word_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n which_o be_v not_o keep_v in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n see_v then_o the_o word_n missa_fw-la that_o be_v mass_n as_o touch_v ecclesiastical_a writer_n be_v never_o find_v among_o the_o greek_n but_o in_o the_o place_n thereof_o they_o write_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v no_o hebrew_n word_n but_o a_o latin_a wherein_o i_o be_o confirm_v by_o a_o sentence_n of_o augustine_n who_o say_v in_o a_o certain_a sermon_n that_o the_o preach_v be_v finish_v missa_fw-la fit_a catechumenis_fw-la the_o catechumeni_fw-la be_v send_v away_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a tarry_v still_o so_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o mystery_n call_v because_o they_o then_o begin_v the_o same_o when_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la be_v send_v away_o wherefore_o missa_fw-la be_v nothing_o else_o but_o missio_fw-la a_o send_v away_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n when_o there_o be_v leave_v give_v to_o depart_v and_o that_o missa_fw-la do_v thus_o signify_v we_o have_v yet_o a_o assure_a testimony_n because_o the_o mystery_n be_v finish_v the_o deacon_n speak_v out_o aloud_o item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la he_o send_v they_o away_o you_o have_v leave_v say_v he_o to_o depart_v this_o do_v i_o think_v as_o touch_v that_o word_n albeit_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o some_o and_o those_o of_o good_a credit_n that_o it_o be_v so_o call_v because_o by_o the_o faithful_a be_v send_v unto_o the_o altar_n gift_n bread_n wine_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n thereof_o afterward_o be_v take_v a_o certain_a part_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v appoint_v to_o the_o mystery_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a which_o may_v be_v see_v not_o only_o out_o of_o irenaeus_n and_o cyprian_n but_o also_o by_o many_o prayer_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v read_v in_o the_o mass_n book_n yea_o it_o be_v verse_n likely_a that_o for_o this_o cause_n those_o prayer_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o collect_v though_o that_o some_o say_v they_o be_v so_o call_v because_o the_o minister_n pray_v there_o not_o in_o his_o own_o name_n only_o but_o rather_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o multitude_n gather_v together_o wherefore_o it_o force_v not_o much_o whether_o it_o be_v call_v mass_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o send_v away_o or_o else_o for_o that_o the_o faithful_a do_v then_o send_v gift_n namely_o when_o the_o offertory_n be_v song_n for_o then_o the_o mystery_n begin_v to_o be_v handle_v it_o be_v both_o way_n a_o latin_a word_n of_o the_o verb_n mitto_fw-la but_o admit_v it_o be_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o a_o hebrew_n word_n 16._o deut._n 16._o which_o be_v read_v in_o deuteronomie_n yet_o do_v it_o nothing_o make_v for_o they_o because_o it_o signify_v the_o first_o fruit_n and_o gift_n which_o the_o people_n bring_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o a_o tribute_n lest_o they_o shall_v appear_v empty_a before_o god_n what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o offer_v up_o of_o christ_n for_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o offer_v those_o thing_n but_o the_o people_n but_o now_o the_o massing_n priest_n will_v offer_v christ_n himself_o and_o they_o exclude_v the_o lie_v man_n from_o that_o offering_n the_o grecian_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n do_v not_o signify_v a_o sacrifice_n but_o a_o public_a ministry_n whereof_o he_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o exercise_v a_o public_a office_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n tribute_n and_o custom_n for_o the_o make_n of_o show_n for_o the_o build_n of_o a_o navy_n or_o maintenance_n of_o a_o army_n and_o such_o other_o kind_n of_o thing_n by_o translation_n it_o agree_v with_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o when_o he_o teach_v bring_v forth_o the_o sacrament_n and_o distribute_v they_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o deal_v with_o public_a and_o common_a good_a thing_n but_o how_o this_o have_v place_n in_o private_a mass_n let_v other_o see_v paul_n else_o where_o use_v it_o for_o a_o distribution_n 13._o rom._n 15_o 26_o 2._o cor._n 9_o 13._o yea_o and_o to_o the_o philippian_n he_o call_v epaphrodytus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o his_o necessity_n for_o he_o serve_v his_o turn_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o philippian_n 25._o phil._n 2_o 25._o wherefore_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o proper_o signify_v a_o sacrifice_n neither_o be_v the_o word_n derive_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v prayer_n but_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v public_a good_a thing_n and_o of_o this_o word_n have_v demosthenes_n and_o his_o interpreter_n sundry_a time_n make_v mention_v wherefore_o out_o of_o the_o name_n as_o well_o of_o missa_fw-la as_o liturgia_fw-la they_o gather_v nothing_o for_o their_o purpose_n to_o show_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n nay_o rather_o it_o be_v show_v that_o these_o name_n do_v signify_v far_o otherwise_o neither_o be_v there_o private_a mass_n in_o ancient_a time_n namely_o begin_v when_o private_a mass_n begin_v until_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n and_o that_o do_v chrysostome_n manifest_o declare_v who_o say_v that_o ●he_v priest_n stand_v at_o the_o altar_n and_o exhort_v they_o that_o stand_v by_o to_o draw_v near_o neither_o shall_v thou_o find_v among_o the_o ancient_a father_n any_o mention_n of_o private_a mass_n until_o gregory_n come_v therefore_o that_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o the_o father_n thanksgiving_n the_o father_n mean_v not_o of_o any_o other_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o communion_n but_o eucharistian_a or_o of_o thanksgiving_n which_o seem_v every_o where_o to_o obtrude_v unto_o we_o this_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n these_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n but_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n unto_o which_o kind_n belong_v praise_n thanksgiving_n confession_n a●mes_n oblation_n and_o especial_o that_o we_o give_v our_o own_o self_n whole_o unto_o god_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v all_o which_o thing_n see_v they_o have_v p●a●e_v in_o the_o holy_a communion_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o thou_o hear_v there_o the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o therein_o be_v thanks_o give_v unto_o god_n because_o he_o so_o deliver_v his_o son_n unto_o the_o death_n for_o our_o sake_n we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o innumerable_a sin_n and_o to_o be_v save_v only_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n alm_n be_v give_v as_o well_o to_o the_o poor_a as_o to_o the_o altar_n &_o there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o faithful_a but_o in_o that_o time_n which_o he_o receive_v the_o mystery_n offer_v himself_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o god_n to_o be_v mortify_v rule_v and_o govern_v be_v not_o all_o these_o sacrifice_n eucharistical_a or_o gratulatorie_a but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v there_o immolate_a offer_v and_o sacrifice_v therefore_o it_o seem_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v fly_v to_o these_o sacrifice_n eucharistical_a or_o of_o thanksgiving_n nay_o rather_o it_o hinder_v nothing_o at_o all_o because_o thou_o thalt_v find_v in_o the_o selfsame_o
signify_v sufficient_a of_o himself_o it_o be_v very_o much_o use_v of_o the_o old_a father_n when_o they_o obtain_v their_o wealth_n and_o riches_n of_o god_n but_o the_o name_n jehovah_n be_v then_o first_o utter_v when_o god_n begin_v to_o show_v forth_o miracle_n for_o thereby_o be_v show_v that_o it_o be_v in_o god_n to_o invert_v both_o the_o nature_n and_o be_v of_o thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n proposition_n 3_o when_o the_o sorcerer_n of_o pharaoh_n say_v it_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n they_o yield_v not_o a_o true_a confession_n unto_o god_n proposition_n 4_o why_o pharaos_n sorcerer_n rather_o fail_v in_o the_o three_o sign_n than_o in_o the_o rest_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v a_o certain_a and_o sure_a reason_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o viij_o ix_o x._o and_o xi_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o they_o which_o give_v divine_a worship_n unto_o creature_n be_v not_o therefore_o excuse_v because_o they_o say_v that_o in_o they_o they_o worship_v god_n or_o the_o property_n of_o god_n proposition_n 2_o albeit_o that_o idolater_n do_v feign_v that_o they_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n in_o his_o creature_n they_o do_v not_o give_v the_o honour_n to_o he_o but_o to_o devil_n proposition_n 3_o we_o must_v well_o distinguish_v between_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n so_o that_o we_o may_v see_v which_o be_v general_a or_o which_o be_v for_o a_o time_n or_o command_v to_o some_o certain_a person_n proposition_n 4_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o affirm_v that_o god_n harden_v the_o hart_n of_o pharaoh_n &_o that_o pharaoh_n harden_v his_o own_o hart_n speak_v not_o contrary_a proposition_n 5_o that_o god_n harden_v the_o heart_n of_o some_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o send_v his_o word_n unto_o they_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o itself_o proposition_n 6_o hail_n tempest_n disease_n and_o other_o like_a calamity_n although_o they_o be_v do_v sometime_o by_o natural_a cause_n yet_o be_v they_o punishment_n for_o sin_n and_o be_v ordain_v to_o warn_v and_o provoke_v man_n to_o repentance_n proposition_n 7_o the_o corruption_n and_o destruction_n of_o good_a thing_n can_v be_v assign_v the_o last_o end_n of_o those_o calamity_n since_o a_o end_n respect_v that_o which_o be_v good_a proposition_n 8_o albeit_o that_o faith_n be_v weak_a yet_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v since_o god_n do_v attribute_n much_o thereunto_o proposition_n 9_o by_o faith_n not_o only_o be_v we_o ourselves_o save_v but_o even_o the_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o we_o which_o likewise_o through_o our_o unbeléefe_n do_v perish_v proposition_n 10_o the_o excessive_a speech_n and_o figure_n use_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v not_o therein_o lie_v discourse_n proposition_n 11_o albeit_o that_o in_o the_o old_a ceremony_n many_o thing_n be_v oftentimes_o commend_v as_o serve_v unto_o those_o time_n and_o that_o civil_a government_n yet_o therein_o be_v first_o set_v forth_o christ_n and_o the_o redemption_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v by_o he_o proposition_n 12_o to_o the_o end_n that_o sacrament_n may_v be_v honourable_o celebrate_v be_v require_v a_o meeting_n together_o not_o of_o one_o or_o two_o brethren_n but_o of_o mo_z at_o once_o proposition_n 13_o the_o holy_a and_o profane_a history_n although_o they_o have_v many_o case_n that_o be_v alike_o yet_o herein_o they_o differ_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a history_n thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereof_o in_o the_o profane_a history_n there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n make_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o we_o acknowledge_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o set_v forth_o to_o be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n proposition_n out_o of_o the_o fourteen_o and_o xv_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o to_o celebrate_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n in_o song_n be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o aught_o to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n proposition_n 2_o music_n have_v the_o power_n to_o stir_v up_o the_o affection_n of_o faithful_a man_n unto_o godliness_n proposition_n 3_o we_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n and_o sing_v his_o praise_n with_o man_n voice_n but_o also_o to_o add_v thereunto_o instrument_n of_o music_n proposition_n 4_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n song_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o take_v out_o of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o people_n proposition_n 5_o we_o must_v also_o beware_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o sing_v those_o song_n be_v not_o lascivious_a proposition_n 6_o the_o stipend_n which_o be_v give_v to_o singer_n in_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o from_o the_o deacons_n proposition_n 7_o whereas_o a_o apt_a voice_n be_v require_v in_o the_o singer_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o the_o censure_n of_o their_o life_n be_v not_o neglect_v proposition_n 8_o such_o music_n must_v be_v have_v in_o the_o church_n as_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o prayer_n and_o attention_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o further_o the_o same_o so_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a proposition_n 9_o dance_v in_o itself_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n unlawful_a proposition_n 10_o to_o use_n danse_v as_o they_o now_o be_v where_o man_n lead_v woman_n and_o that_o such_o as_o be_v not_o their_o own_o be_v far_o from_o christian_n godliness_n proposition_n 11_o the_o danse_v which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o man_n by_o themselves_o and_o woman_n by_o themselves_o proposition_n 12_o action_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v just_a and_o unjust_a not_o only_o according_a to_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o accident_n which_o many_o time_n follow_v they_o probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o pass_v the_o red_a sea_n come_v not_o to_o the_o other_o shore_n which_o be_v right_o over_o against_o they_o proposition_n 2_o they_o hold_v their_o iornie_n by_o sea_n in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o semicircle_n proposition_n 3_o the_o sea_n shore_n of_o the_o desert_n elim_n from_o whence_o they_o depart_v be_v the_o self-same_a with_o that_o whereunto_o they_o arrive_v albeit_o that_o the_o place_n of_o the_o shore_n be_v not_o all_o one_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o xvi_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o god_n forsake_v not_o those_o which_o obey_v his_o call_n but_o rather_o succore_v they_o according_a to_o their_o necessity_n proposition_n 2_o other_o good_a thing_n always_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v of_o god_n not_o as_o a_o principal_a reward_n but_o as_o necessary_a help_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o our_o call_n proposition_n 3_o when_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n our_o daily_a bread_n be_v require_v temporal_a good_a thing_n be_v desire_v temporal_a good_a thing_n be_v ask_v proposition_n 4_o albeit_o that_o god_n command_v that_o manna_n shall_v be_v daily_o gather_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o therefore_o forbid_v to_o lay_v up_o in_o barn_n or_o storehouse_n the_o fruit_n which_o come_v yearly_a for_o the_o necessary_a use_n of_o this_o life_n so_o that_o we_o avoid_v covetous_a carefulness_n the_o hindrance_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o infidelity_n proposition_n 5_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o carefulness_n forbid_v we_o of_o to_o morrow_n which_o leave_v their_o vocation_n or_o do_v not_o diligent_o execute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v get_v themselves_o substance_n or_o else_o to_o obtain_v a_o more_o delicate_a estate_n proposition_n 6_o whereas_o manna_n be_v preserve_v till_o the_o morrow_n become_v corrupt_v and_o be_v full_a of_o worm_n it_o be_v do_v by_o miracle_n proposition_n 7_o it_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n of_o some_o of_o the_o papist_n that_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n must_v be_v keep_v in_o church_n because_o it_o be_v command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o manna_n shall_v be_v keep_v for_o a_o perpetual_a monument_n proposition_n 8_o the_o miracle_n of_o give_v manna_n by_o reason_n that_o it_o comprehend_v many_o other_o miracle_n it_o also_o endure_v long_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n proposition_n 9_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a opinion_n to_o affirm_v that_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o force_v of_o certain_a word_n though_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n man_n do_v obtain_v some_o certain_a benefit_n of_o god_n proposition_n 10_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n be_v the_o sacrament_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o manna_n with_o the_o old_a father_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n proposition_n 11_o whereas_o christ_n say_v in_o john_n that_o they_o which_o eat_v his_o flesh_n shall_v not_o die_v but_o shall_v have_v life_n he_o understand_v the_o same_o of_o true_a and_o spiritual_a eat_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destitute_a of_o fruit_n proposition_n
will_v or_o no_o to_o grant_v that_o he_o give_v bread_n neither_o be_v this_o word_n body_n refer_v unto_o those_o verb_n he_o take_v he_o bless_v he_o break_v and_o he_o give_v but_o unto_o this_o verb_n est_fw-fr is._n yet_o as_o i_o have_v say_v i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v howbeit_o since_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v both_o to_o wit_n as_o well_o bread_n as_o body_n you_o ought_v to_o grant_v both_o but_o let_v we_o try_v a_o other_o way_n you_o evermore_o use_v this_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o prove_v that_o bread_n must_v be_v exclude_v out_o of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o that_o which_o you_o will_v have_v necessary_o prove_v hereby_o for_o so_o much_o as_o you_o take_v your_o argument_n from_o a_o doubtful_a thing_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v bring_v in_o many_o such_o like_a proposition_n which_o be_v hold_v for_o figurative_a and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v significative_a kind_n of_o speech_n you_o can_v prove_v but_o that_o this_o be_v of_o the_o selfsame_o kind_n it_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n 4_o 1._o cor._n 10_o 4_o but_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n 11._o john_n 6_o 70._o gen_n 17_o 11._o and_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o apostle_n have_v not_o i_o choose_v you_o twelve_o and_o one_o of_o you_o be_v a_o devil_n 22._o matt._n 17_o 10_o john_n 20_o 22._o and_o of_o circumcision_n my_o covenant_n shall_v be_v in_o your_o flesh_n and_o of_o john_n if_o you_o will_v receive_v he_o he_o be_v helias_n again_o when_o he_o have_v breathe_v upon_o they_o he_o say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o john_n 15_o 1._o and_o again_o i_o be_o the_o vine_n i_o be_o the_o door_n 27_o gen._n 37_o 27._o 1._o co._n 12_o 27_o of_o joseph_n juda_n say_v he_o be_v our_o brother_n and_o our_o flesh_n paul_n say_v of_o christ_n he_o be_v our_o peace_n and_o of_o ourselves_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 14._o esai_n 1_o 14._o and_o it_o be_v write_v also_o that_o he_o be_v a_o stone_n of_o offence_n 16._o rom._n 1_o 16._o and_o a_o rock_n to_o stumble_v at_o and_o paul_n affirm_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n 142._o psal_n 110_o 7._o psa_fw-la 119_o 86_o and_o 142._o and_o in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v diverse_a time_n say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v righteousness_n judgement_n and_o truth_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n testify_v 18._o 1_o cor._n 1_o 18._o that_o the_o gospel_n unto_o the_o unfaithful_a be_v but_o foolishness_n in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n 25._o gen._n 41_o 25._o the_o seven_o ear_n be_v seven_o year_n and_o the_o ten_o piece_n of_o the_o clock_n be_v ten_o tribe_n of_o israel_n 30_o 3_o kin._n 11_o 30_o as_o ahias_n the_o silonit_a say_v also_o the_o woman_n wear_v upon_o her_o head_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v power_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o priest_n do_v eat_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n again_o christ_n for_o we_o become_v sin_n the_o lamb_n or_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v the_o passover_o and_o again_o christ_n our_o passover_o be_v offer_v up_o and_o infinite_a other_o place_n which_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v the_o like_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o which_o account_v sith_o this_o sentence_n this_o be_v my_o body_n aught_o to_o be_v number_v and_o be_v cite_v of_o you_o in_o a_o plain_a sense_n it_o conclude_v nothing_o since_o you_o lean_a to_o ambiguity_n and_o when_o you_o say_v that_o you_o be_v hereunto_o compel_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n you_o bring_v forth_o that_o sentence_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n who_o right_a sense_n nevertheless_o may_v appear_v by_o other_o place_n d._n chadse_n i_o deny_v that_o we_o lean_a to_o ambiguity_n there_o be_v none_o but_o do_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v many_o figurative_a speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o yet_o we_o deny_v that_o all_o be_v figure_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o good_a argument_n here_o and_o there_o be_v figurative_a speech_n therefore_o this_o also_o be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n but_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n there_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n show_v it_o but_o no_o circumstance_n be_v here_o that_o make_v demonstration_n hereof_o and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o verb_n be_v shall_v be_v take_v for_o it_o signify_v christ_n shall_v be_v no_o very_a man_n except_o by_o signification_n and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n 14._o john_n 1_o 14._o we_o shall_v interpret_v it_o it_o signify_v flesh_n and_o the_o word_n be_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n make_v flesh_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v write_v god_n be_v the_o word_n we_o shall_v interpret_v it_o that_o he_o signify_v the_o word_n and_o thus_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v confound_v wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o in_o this_o place_n there_o be_v no_o figure_n d._n martyr_n as_o touch_v christ_n whether_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n there_o be_v extant_a most_o evident_a testimony_n whereby_o we_o be_v constrain_v to_o understand_v absolute_o those_o sentence_n which_o you_o allege_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v affirm_v in_o this_o place_n a_o figurative_a speech_n we_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o also_o by_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v write_v there_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o remembrance_n be_v not_o of_o thing_n corporal_o present_a but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v absent_a it_o be_v add_v until_o my_o come_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a if_o he_o be_v already_o come_v thither_o by_o consecration_n and_o paul_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o it_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v break_v fith_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o glory_n it_o can_v possible_o suffer_v and_o moreover_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v and_o eat_v which_o without_o a_o figure_n can_v be_v understand_v if_o you_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o beseem_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v and_o grind_v with_o the_o tooth_n the_o which_o be_v do_v in_o true_a and_o proper_a eat_n moreover_o you_o yourselves_o be_v compel_v to_o admit_v a_o figure_n for_o by_o your_o opinion_n well_o know_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o eucharist_n except_o after_o the_o word_n be_v utter_v so_o as_o the_o verb_n be_v can_v be_v understand_v in_o his_o own_o proper_a signification_n while_o you_o utter_v the_o same_o for_o it_o behoove_v first_o that_o a_o thing_n be_v before_o any_o thing_n can_v true_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o same_o beside_o this_o in_o luke_n and_o in_o paul_n the_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o cup_n wherein_o you_o can_v shun_v a_o figure_n when_o it_o be_v say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o it_o signify_v the_o new_a testament_n again_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n my_o word_n be_v spirit_n and_o life_n the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o and_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o ascension_n and_o thus_o much_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o and_o by_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o father_n d._n chadse_n i_o answer_v that_o those_o word_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o till_o i_o shall_v come_v do_v not_o argue_v a_o figure_n it_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n somewhat_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o a_o thing_n therefore_o it_o be_v nothing_o or_o it_o remain_v not_o christ_n think_v rather_o by_o those_o word_n to_o commend_v unto_o they_o the_o action_n which_o be_v then_o do_v before_o they_o that_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o may_v do_v that_o which_o they_o see_v he_o have_v do_v and_o whereas_o you_o add_v until_o i_o shall_v come_v it_o must_v be_v understand_v as_o touch_v his_o humane_a form_n wherein_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v for_o this_o sacrifice_n shall_v not_o cease_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o unto_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v speak_v of_o break_v thus_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o break_v upon_o the_o cross_n when_o his_o side_n be_v open_v with_o a_o spear_n and_o he_o be_v break_v every_o day_n spiritual_o in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o we_o set_v forth_o his_o death_n d._n martyr_n there_o be_v no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o paul_n 16_o 1._o co._n 10_o 16_o when_o he_o say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n signify_v that_o same_o visible_a
word_n forbid_v you_o so_o to_o do_v for_o he_o say_v while_o we_o receive_v as_o well_o sweet_a bread_n as_o levened_a bread_n and_o the_o verb_n of_o the_o present_a tense_n do_v plain_o betoken_v that_o we_o in_o the_o communion_n do_v receive_v either_o sweet_a bread_n or_o levened_a bread_n and_o in_o truth_n we_o receive_v not_o the_o sacrament_n but_o after_o consecration_n epiphanius_n epiphanius_n the_o word_n of_o epiphanius_n whereof_o i_o argue_v you_o think_v good_a to_o recite_v all_o at_o full_a length_n the_o which_o be_v on_o this_o wise_a he_o rise_v up_o in_o the_o supper_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o he_o say_v this_o be_v i_o and_o this_o and_o this_o and_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o equality_n nor_o alike_o neither_o to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o to_o the_o invisible_a godhead_n nor_o yet_o to_o the_o lineament_n of_o the_o part_n of_o his_o body_n for_o this_o be_v of_o a_o round_a form_n &_o insensible_a as_o touch_v power_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v of_o his_o grace_n say_v this_o be_v i_o and_o this_o and_o this_o and_o every_o man_n do_v believe_v it_o etc._n etc._n this_o do_v you_o interpret_v that_o that_o which_o be_v of_o a_o round_a figure_n be_v insensible_a and_o you_o infer_v that_o by_o these_o word_n it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n fall_v away_o from_o grace_n and_o salvation_n my_o argument_n be_v bring_v in_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v by_o the_o lord_n speak_v concern_v the_o bread_n the_o which_o my_o adversary_n deny_v for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v absurd_a either_o for_o the_o bread_n or_o the_o accident_n to_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n against_o he_o i_o bring_v these_o word_n of_o epiphanius_n wherein_o he_o plain_o say_v that_o as_o touch_v that_o which_o be_v of_o round_a form_n it_o please_v christ_n by_o his_o grace_n to_o say_v both_o this_o and_o this_o to_o wit_n both_o this_o and_o this_o be_v i_o that_o be_v my_o body_n and_o the_o round_a thing_n itself_o to_o the_o intent_n you_o may_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v bread_n he_o call_v it_o insensible_a as_o concern_v power_n which_o may_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o add_v but_o our_o lord_n we_o know_v to_o be_v altogether_o sense_n and_o he_o that_o altogether_o perceive_v etc._n etc._n and_o again_o when_o he_o say_v for_o this_o be_v of_o a_o round_a form_n can_v you_o understand_v the_o accident_n for_o those_o be_v roundness_n itself_o and_o not_o of_o a_o round_a form_n in_o the_o genetive_n case_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n since_o he_o be_v not_o of_o a_o round_a form_n wherefore_o that_o stand_v strong_a which_o i_o infer_v thereof_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o epiphanius_n be_v speak_v of_o bread_n and_o i_o marvel_v at_o you_o that_o since_o you_o have_v take_v upon_o you_o to_o dissolve_v argument_n which_o be_v not_o assotle_v you_o speak_v nothing_o of_o basil_n didymus_n cyrill_n &_o vigilius_n and_o understand_v you_o i_o that_o i_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n not_o only_o to_o stand_v to_o my_o promise_n but_o also_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o those_o thing_n may_v not_o be_v without_o fruit_n which_o i_o object_v in_o the_o first_o disputation_n whereby_o you_o say_v that_o you_o be_v afraid_a lest_o they_o which_o hear_v they_o shall_v be_v seduce_v and_o thus_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v not_o to_o seduce_v but_o to_o teach_v i_o shall_v confirm_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o they_o may_v attain_v to_o their_o end_n and_o now_o have_v you_o leave_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o i_o know_v to_o oppose_v what_o you_o will_n d._n chadse_n you_o have_v spend_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o time_n wherein_o we_o may_v have_v dispute_v in_o reckon_v up_o these_o thing_n and_o now_o you_o seem_v so_o to_o handle_v the_o matter_n as_o if_o i_o shall_v change_v my_o person_n and_o of_o a_o opposer_n become_v a_o answerer_n which_o fault_n i_o commit_v not_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o first_o disputation_n when_o i_o propound_v those_o solution_n which_o be_v meet_v for_o your_o argument_n see_v i_o be_v to_o answer_v and_o now_o be_v they_o rehearse_v of_o you_o out_o of_o time_n which_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v do_v d._n martyr_n i_o have_v not_o do_v any_o thing_n here_o amiss_o for_o one_o to_o confirm_v his_o question_n before_o he_o dispute_v and_o to_o fortify_v they_o with_o sure_a argument_n be_v the_o usual_a manner_n of_o all_o disputer_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o time_n of_o oppose_v be_v but_o short_a i_o may_v not_o go_v through_o with_o the_o principal_a reason_n which_o i_o have_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n lest_o i_o shall_v seem_v to_o affirm_v false_a and_o unaduised_a matter_n they_o be_v at_o the_o least_o wise_a in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v explain_v in_o very_a truth_n i_o promise_v that_o i_o will_v at_o this_o time_n bring_v a_o confutation_n of_o your_o answer_n which_o all_o man_n can_v testify_v which_o both_o now_o be_v and_o then_o be_v present_a and_o at_o that_o time_n i_o show_v good_a cause_n why_o i_o then_o omit_v the_o handle_n thereof_o even_o to_o the_o intent_n we_o shall_v not_o loose_v our_o labour_n and_o that_o the_o hearer_n may_v not_o be_v force_v to_o hear_v in_o a_o manner_n no_o other_o thing_n that_o day_n save_v the_o argument_n which_o be_v handle_v the_o day_n before_o neither_o do_v it_o like_o i_o that_o you_o will_v constrain_v i_o by_o that_o cunning_a to_o dispute_v with_o you_o not_o after_o my_o mind_n but_o according_a to_o your_o own_o like_n for_o see_v it_o be_v then_o my_o turn_n to_o oppose_v i_o think_v good_a to_o keep_v myself_o free_a for_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o those_o argument_n which_o i_o have_v determine_v of_o and_o not_o to_o handle_v those_o which_o yourself_o have_v propose_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o if_o you_o have_v then_o urge_v i_o and_o egg_v i_o to_o have_v proceed_v therein_o i_o will_v have_v yield_v unto_o you_o but_o since_o you_o speak_v not_o of_o it_o i_o think_v good_a by_o your_o consent_n to_o defer_v that_o matter_n until_o this_o day_n neither_o must_v it_o be_v so_o gréevous_a unto_o you_o if_o i_o now_o requite_v you_o like_v for_o like_a because_o it_o be_v more_o just_a that_o i_o shall_v defend_v my_o own_o matter_n than_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o you_o shall_v undertake_v to_o defend_v other_o man_n d._n chadse_n howbeit_o i_o constrain_v you_o not_o to_o change_v your_o person_n since_o you_o then_o object_v and_o i_o answer_v but_o what_o shall_v i_o now_o do_v let_v there_o be_v give_v we_o a_o other_o day_n to_o dispute_v this_o do_v the_o visitor_n deny_v that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v otherwise_o i_o have_v be_v content_a d._n chadse_n then_o see_v the_o person_n must_v be_v change_v now_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v good_a i_o will_v come_v thither_o and_o you_o shall_v come_v hither_o that_o i_o may_v answer_v unto_o these_o thing_n and_o that_o you_o may_v oppose_v d._n martyr_n i_o shall_v be_v content_a that_o you_o do_v what_o you_o will_n if_o a_o other_o day_n may_v be_v grant_v i_o shall_v be_v glad_a but_o if_o that_o may_v not_o be_v and_o that_o you_o will_v perform_v it_o now_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o do_v what_o you_o will_n the_o visitor_n once_o again_o put_v it_o to_o his_o free_a choice_n to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v d._n chadse_n sigh_v they_o have_v so_o think_v it_o good_a let_v we_o proceed_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n may_v be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n thus_o i_o prove_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o john_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o five_o kind_n of_o bread_n the_o first_o whereby_o the_o multitude_n be_v refresh_v whereupon_o christ_n say_v you_o seek_v i_o because_o you_o do_v eat_v bread_n 26._o john_n 6_o 26._o the_o second_o bread_n be_v faith_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v 27._o verse_n 27._o labour_v for_o the_o meat_n which_o perish_v not_o but_o which_o endure_v they_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v and_o christ_n answer_v 29._o verse_n 29._o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v the_o three_o bread_n be_v manna_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v 31._o verse_n 31._o your_o father_n do_v eat_v manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o be_v dead_a 35._o verse_n 35._o the_o four_o bread_n be_v christ_n whereupon_o he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n the_o five_o bread_n be_v not_o that_o which_o
salute_v viretus_fw-la zanchus_fw-la my_o associate_n desire_v i_o to_o salute_v you_o to_o theodore_n beza_n 24._o my_o dear_a and_o well-beloved_a brother_n in_o christ_n the_o letter_n which_o i_o join_v unto_o these_o of_o i_o do_v your_o friend_n and_o i_o yea_o our_o common_a friend_n gasper_n olevian_n write_v unto_o i_o but_o because_o there_o want_v carrier_n to_o come_v to_o you_o and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o much_o leisure_n he_o pray_v i_o that_o read_v they_o over_o i_o will_v straightway_o send_v they_o unto_o you_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o yourself_o may_v not_o be_v ignorant_a what_o he_o do_v and_o what_o danger_n he_o stand_v in_o for_o publish_v the_o gospel_n very_o that_o which_o the_o good_a and_o godly_a man_n have_v desire_v of_o i_o i_o most_o willing_o do_v for_o two_o cause_n first_o to_o gratify_v olevian_n himself_o who_o i_o make_v great_a account_n of_o for_o his_o great_a learning_n and_o singular_a indevor_n towards_o religion_n then_o because_o there_o be_v offer_v a_o just_a occasion_n of_o write_v unto_o you_o which_o i_o take_v willing_o and_o of_o my_o own_o accord_n for_o the_o good_a love_n which_o i_o bear_v unto_o you_o for_o otherwise_o i_o be_v desirous_a to_o give_v you_o thanks_o for_o the_o little_a book_n which_o n._n deliver_v to_o i_o in_o your_o name_n wherein_o you_o have_v elegant_o comprehend_v as_o you_o do_v other_o thing_n the_o law_n of_o your_o new_a erect_a school_n wherefore_o i_o do_v exceed_o rejoice_v with_o you_o your_o church_n and_o common_a weal_n for_o the_o university_n which_o you_o have_v erect_v and_o i_o pray_v and_o beseech_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o may_v be_v daily_o increase_v with_o great_a gift_n and_o that_o it_o may_v become_v fruitful_a as_o well_o unto_o religion_n as_o unto_o policy_n according_a to_o your_o desire_n sure_o there_o can_v not_o be_v desire_v of_o you_o a_o more_o profitable_a thing_n especial_o in_o these_o day_n praise_v be_v god_n which_o so_o direct_v you_o in_o the_o great_a peril_n that_o you_o more_o large_o think_v upon_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o glory_n than_o many_o other_o do_v which_o on_o everieside_n abound_v and_o be_v full_a of_o security_n and_o idleness_n no_o doubt_n but_o god_n will_v be_v present_a at_o his_o work_n and_o that_o which_o you_o have_v to_o very_o good_a purpose_n begin_v he_o will_v not_o only_o defend_v but_o as_o i_o assure_v myself_o and_o all_o good_a man_n do_v hope_n he_o will_v prosper_v with_o plentiful_a and_o large_a increase_v neither_o can_v they_o better_o provide_v for_o your_o new_a school_n than_o to_o choose_v you_o to_o be_v the_o guide_n and_o governor_n thereof_o for_o you_o according_a to_o your_o dexterity_n and_o wisdom_n wherewith_o god_n have_v adorn_v you_o will_v so_o direct_v and_o temper_v all_o thing_n as_o upon_o those_o foundation_n which_o shall_v be_v lay_v of_o you_o other_o shall_v be_v able_a in_o a_o manner_n without_o any_o pain_n to_o build_v right_o and_o sincere_o as_o for_o my_o part_n if_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o else_o i_o will_v yield_v unto_o you_o which_o run_v right_o and_o valiant_o no_o dead_a but_o lively_a and_o most_o evident_a reioysing_n but_o to_o return_v to_o olevian_n the_o more_o he_o be_v endanger_v for_o christ_n cause_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o more_o ready_o and_o cheerful_o shall_v he_o be_v holpen_v by_o prayer_n neither_o will_v that_o exhortation_n be_v ungrateful_a nor_o unfruitful_a which_o shall_v comfort_v and_o refresh_v he_o in_o so_o great_a a_o contention_n and_o gréevous_a a_o conflict_n but_o there_o be_v no_o need_n for_o i_o with_o my_o counsel_n to_o give_v you_o light_n who_o see_v cléerelie_o and_o evident_o farewell_n faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o most_o love_a brother_n in_o christ_n god_n bless_v your_o labour_n i_o pray_v you_o in_o my_o name_n salute_v master_n caluin_n and_o master_n viret_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o fellow_n laborer_n the_o danger_n wherein_o you_o live_v do_v no_o less_o touch_v i_o and_o other_o good_a man_n than_o if_o we_o be_v there_o present_a in_o your_o place_n we_o will_v not_o be_v behind_o with_o our_o prayer_n i_o pray_v god_n of_o his_o mercy_n grant_v that_o we_o may_v hear_v that_o thing_n come_v to_o pass_v according_a to_o our_o hope_n the_o 4._o of_o october_n 1559._o to_o a_o certain_a friend_n of_o he_o now_o most_o worthy_a sir_n to_o who_o i_o be_o for_o many_o cause_n behold_v i_o send_v over_o unto_o you_o according_a to_o my_o promise_n a_o few_o day_n past_a that_o same_o write_a confession_n seal_v up_o with_o little_a twig_n as_o i_o receive_v the_o same_o and_o when_o i_o do_v thorough_o consider_v thereof_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o be_v exhibit_v by_o our_o sort_n in_o such_o wise_a as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o apprehend_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o faith_n not_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o whole_a key_n of_o this_o controversy_n certain_o i_o be_o not_o offend_v at_o the_o name_n of_o substance_n because_o i_o know_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o carry_v to_o a_o vain_a and_o feign_a body_n but_o i_o marvel_v at_o this_o that_o in_o the_o second_o article_n it_o be_v say_v that_o sign_n have_v always_o join_v with_o they_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o be_v signify_v and_o that_o in_o the_o third_o be_v declare_v the_o manner_n of_o that_o conjunction_n which_o be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v call_v only_o figurative_a or_o shadow_a very_o for_o my_o part_n i_o know_v none_o other_o conjunction_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n with_o the_o sign_n than_o that_o which_o be_v of_o signification_n which_o nevertheless_o i_o affirm_v not_o to_o be_v of_o small_a force_n but_o a_o effectual_a conjunction_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v the_o same_o as_o a_o certain_a instrument_n even_o as_o he_o use_v the_o outward_a word_n and_o no_o less_o obscure_a be_v that_o which_o be_v add_v which_o may_v true_o &_o certain_o represent_v under_o the_o show_n of_o visible_a thing_n if_o the_o verb_n to_o represent_v do_v note_v a_o type_n or_o figure_n it_o be_v well_o but_o if_o it_o be_v to_o appoint_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v true_o present_a as_o it_o do_v oftentimes_o signify_v it_o be_v not_o true_a and_o a_o occasion_n be_v give_v of_o sin_v and_o see_v in_o these_o thing_n it_o behoove_v to_o deal_v with_o very_o great_a perspicuity_n doubtless_o in_o my_o judgement_n there_o need_v a_o more_o large_a exposition_n again_o in_o the_o same_o third_o article_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o controversy_n be_v only_o about_o the_o manner_n of_o presence_n which_o be_v know_v to_o god_n alone_o but_o i_o think_v that_o it_o have_v always_o be_v confirm_v by_o one_o sort_n that_o the_o same_o manner_n be_v the_o apprehend_n of_o a_o livelie_a faith_n wherefore_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o presence_n be_v to_o be_v account_v obscure_a or_o doubtful_a the_o manner_n of_o the_o lutheran_n presence_n can_v be_v understand_v for_o while_o they_o affirm_v a_o real_a and_o substantial_a presence_n they_o either_o extend_v the_o lord_n body_n unto_o a_o infinite_a greatness_n or_o else_o they_o pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v in_o a_o thousand_o place_n at_o once_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n go_v beyond_o all_o truth_n and_o reason_n and_o bréefelie_o i_o see_v not_o that_o in_o this_o profession_n our_o true_a conjunction_n with_o christ_n be_v any_o where_o signify_v to_o be_v such_o as_o may_v abide_v a_o distance_n of_o place_n between_o we_o and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o here_o among_o we_o be_v not_o require_v his_o real_a or_o substantial_a presence_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v true_o be_v join_v with_o he_o these_o thing_n only_o i_o be_v mind_v now_o to_o show_v which_o will_v somewhat_o disquiet_v i_o if_o i_o though_o that_o it_o be_v so_o write_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o brethren_n but_o because_o i_o can_v persuade_v myself_o thereof_o i_o be_o the_o less_o grieve_v yet_o grieve_v i_o be_o because_o i_o hear_v that_o such_o thing_n be_v carry_v about_o under_o our_o name_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o will_v perceive_v more_o thing_n who_o have_v no_o need_n of_o one_o to_o show_v you_o and_o some_o thing_n i_o do_v interpret_v favourable_o and_o do_v whole_o persuade_v myself_o that_o you_o will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v write_v since_o you_o be_v not_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o all_o proceed_v from_o a_o good_a heart_n but_o i_o will_v no_o long_o let_v your_o business_n fare_v you_o well_o and_o love_v
thing_n be_v speak_v in_o the_o french_a tongue_n for_o so_o it_o be_v agree_v upon_o because_o the_o queen_n the_o king_n and_o the_o noble_a personage_n may_v understande_v wherefore_o since_o i_o can_v speak_v that_o language_n although_o i_o understande_v the_o same_o i_o speak_v nothing_o neither_o be_v i_o request_v to_o speak_v but_o yet_o in_o the_o end_n at_o the_o instance_n of_o my_o brethren_n and_o associate_n i_o desire_v of_o the_o queen_n that_o leave_n may_v be_v give_v i_o to_o speak_v hereafter_o which_o courteous_o and_o most_o gentle_o she_o grant_v i_o moreover_o i_o demand_v in_o what_o tongue_n she_o will_v have_v i_o to_o speak_v she_o answer_v in_o italian_a that_o she_o also_o may_v not_o be_v ignorant_a what_o shall_v be_v do_v the_o 26._o day_n of_o september_n we_o meet_v together_o again_o we_o be_v warn_v by_o the_o queen_n the_o prince_n of_o condie_n and_o the_o admiral_n who_o be_v desirous_a that_o the_o conference_n shall_v not_o be_v break_v of_o that_o we_o shall_v forbear_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o first_o place_n of_o the_o article_n as_o touch_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n for_o they_o see_v it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v before_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o that_o point_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o most_o grievous_a abuse_n and_o error_n wherefore_o we_o present_v a_o supplication_n to_o the_o queen_n wherein_o two_o thing_n special_o be_v contain_v first_o that_o our_o man_n shall_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n upon_o no_o just_a cause_n be_v despoil_v of_o their_o ministry_n whereas_o yet_o if_o we_o will_v urge_v they_o touch_v their_o institution_n according_a to_o the_o lawful_a canon_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o may_v easy_o show_v the_o same_o to_o be_v void_a and_o that_o they_o be_v very_o stranger_n from_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n second_o we_o complain_v that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n compel_v by_o force_n to_o receyve_v the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n and_o to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o prescpipt_v word_n thereof_o otherwise_o that_o the_o appoint_a conference_n shall_v not_o go_v forward_o we_o show_v that_o it_o belong_v unto_o the_o majesty_n royal_a to_o decree_v as_o touch_v the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o dispute_v the_o queen_n at_o that_o time_n make_v no_o answer_n to_o the_o supplication_n there_o the_o cardinal_n begin_v again_o to_o deal_v as_o touch_v our_o vocation_n affirm_v that_o the_o same_o be_v void_a further_o he_o complain_v that_o we_o reproove_v both_o he_o and_o other_o bishop_n as_o though_o they_o have_v no_o just_a call_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o will_v go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o king_n authority_n whereby_o they_o be_v create_v bishop_n which_o in_o his_o judgement_n be_v a_o most_o seditious_a thing_n after_o this_o he_o turn_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o eucharist_n affirm_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o suppper_n to_o wit_n this_o be_v my_o body_n must_v be_v understand_v even_o as_o they_o be_v speak_v there_o i_o take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n and_o first_o of_o all_o i_o defend_v the_o ministry_n of_o our_o church_n it_o will_v now_o be_v over_o long_a to_o write_v the_o reason_n also_o i_o answer_v to_o the_o false_a accusation_n wherein_o he_o slander_v we_o to_o be_v seditious_a as_o we_o that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o appointment_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v in_o the_o king_n power_n i_o add_v moreover_o that_o i_o do_v very_o much_o marvel_v that_o the_o cardinal_n say_v yesterday_o that_o there_o be_v only_o three_o counsel_n before_o augustin_n see_v he_o himself_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o the_o syrmian_n council_n hold_v in_o the_o time_n of_o constantius_n which_o counsel_v since_o that_o they_o gréevous_o err_v they_o be_v afterward_o amend_v i_o object_v moreover_o that_o he_o be_v excéedinglie_o deceive_v insomuch_o as_o he_o be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a history_n in_o the_o testament_n and_o sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o trope_n or_o figurative_a speech_n and_o i_o make_v it_o evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v figure_n find_v and_o that_o therefore_o it_o may_v not_o be_v conclude_v of_o he_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o they_o call_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n shall_v be_v understand_v absolute_o there_o a_o spaniarde_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o jesuite_n which_o come_v thither_o with_o the_o pope_n legate_n sudden_o take_v hold_v of_o my_o word_n and_o make_v a_o sharp_a oration_n where_o he_o reproove_v the_o queen_n majesty_n that_o she_o have_v take_v upon_o her_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o cause_n see_v it_o do_v not_o belong_v unto_o she_o but_o unto_o the_o pope_n the_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v while_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v hold_v to_o celebrate_v here_o such_o a_o private_a conference_n this_o oration_n of_o the_o arrogant_a man_n great_o offend_v the_o queen_n and_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n she_o will_v have_v teach_v the_o jesuite_n modesty_n the_o cardinal_n turn_v his_o talk_n to_o i_o yet_o so_o nevertheless_o as_o all_o man_n may_v perceive_v that_o he_o refuse_v to_o encounter_v with_o i_o he_o begin_v to_o allege_v that_o he_o understand_v not_o my_o language_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v report_v that_o he_o understand_v it_o very_o well_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v rather_o dispute_v with_o a_o man_n of_o his_o own_o language_n but_o i_o excuse_v myself_o that_o i_o speak_v on_o this_o wise_a by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o that_o otherwise_o i_o be_v ready_a to_o dispute_v in_o latin_a therefore_o he_o begin_v to_o answer_v i_o after_o a_o sort_n in_o the_o french_a tongue_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v unless_o he_o have_v understand_v what_o i_o say_v yet_o nevertheless_o he_o answer_v not_o to_o all_o the_o objection_n and_o when_o i_o be_v to_o confute_v his_o argument_n the_o queen_n advise_v i_o to_o use_v the_o latin_a tongue_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o all_o the_o prelate_n and_o doctor_n which_v stand_v by_o may_v understande_v i_o obey_v and_o those_o thing_n i_o speak_v which_o be_v convenient_a for_o the_o time_n therewithal_o come_v beza_n and_o in_o few_o word_n answer_v the_o jangle_a spaniarde_n and_o then_o he_o begin_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o about_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o dispute_v somewhat_o as_o touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n will_v not_o have_v it_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o bread_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a supper_n there_o do_v i_o bring_v in_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n who_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n take_v break_v bless_v it_o martyr_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n set_v to_o school_v by_o peter_n martyr_n break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o i_o show_v that_o these_o verb_n have_v no_o other_o accusative_a case_n than_o bread_n in_o vain_a do_v he_o endeavour_v to_o unwind_v himself_o d._n depensius_n begin_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o in_o the_o matter_n but_o when_o he_o can_v not_o refrain_v from_o the_o loud_a and_o clamorous_a speech_n of_o the_o sorboniste_n the_o matter_n break_v forth_o into_o a_o action_n of_o tumult_n insomuch_o as_o neither_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o abstain_v from_o exceed_a great_a noise_n wherefore_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o queen_n the_o night_n be_v now_o come_v the_o assembly_n be_v dissolve_v the_o manner_n of_o that_o action_n seem_v unworthy_a of_o a_o kingly_a presence_n wherefore_o the_o queen_n determine_v to_o be_v no_o more_o present_a neither_o will_v she_o afterward_o that_o the_o matter_n shall_v be_v try_v between_o so_o many_o but_o she_o assign_v five_o collocutor_n on_o the_o adversary_n part_n and_o five_o also_o on_o our_o part_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v choose_v the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n the_o bishop_n of_o sagensis_n doctor_n bottiller_n doctor_n salignacus_n and_o doctor_n depensius_n and_o of_o our_o sort_n these_o be_v the_o name_n beza_n galasius_n marlorate_a spina_n and_o myself_o for_o both_o part_n there_o be_v appoint_v notary_n but_o be_v without_o judge_n and_o other_o witness_n we_o talk_v friendly_a and_o quiet_o enough_o for_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v we_o have_v adversary_n meek_a enough_o and_o which_o disagree_v not_o much_o from_o us._n we_o have_v be_v now_o thrice_o with_o they_o and_o to_o conclude_v we_o have_v only_o deal_v as_o touch_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n in_o the_o supper_n i_o be_o call_v but_o
do_v nor_o always_o define_v thing_n that_o be_v profitable_a 2_o 227a_o whether_o that_o which_o be_v call_v original_a sin_n be_v voluntary_a 2_o 219_o b_o commend_v and_o praise_v 2_o 221_o b_o it_o remain_v after_o regeneration_n but_o the_o blame_n be_v take_v away_o by_o christ_n 2_o 274_o b_o it_o own_o nature_n mortal_a 2_o 272_o b_o both_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n 2_o 571_o a_o 274_o b_o 275_o a_o 219_o ab_fw-la why_o it_o be_v call_v sin_n see_v the_o blame_n thereof_o be_v take_v away_o 2_o 274b_n whether_o that_o which_o remain_v in_o the_o regenerate_a be_v sin_n 2_o 271_o ab_fw-la 272_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o concupiscence_n or_o lust_a 2_o 570b_n ¶_o look_v lust_n &_o motion_n confession_n a_o distinction_n of_o confession_n 3_o 114_o a_o not_o available_a in_o all_o alike_o ●_o 109_o ab_fw-la force_v in_o the_o philistine_n pharaoh_n &_o other_o touch_v god_n 1_o 13b_v require_v in_o justification_n 3_o 105_o b_o whether_o it_o stand_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 3_o 217_o a_o what_o confession_n be_v require_v in_o the_o church_n 2_o 630_o b_o distinguish_v into_o diverse_a kind_n 3_o 216_o b_o it_o must_v be_v do_v to_o god_n himself_o 3_o 219_o b_o private_a confession_n of_o sin_n in_o some_o case_n allow_v 3_o 220_o a_o why_o paul_n join_v confession_n unto_o faith_n 3_o 262_o b_o outward_a action_n be_v a_o certain_a show_n thereof_o 2_o 316_o ab_fw-la peter_n confession_n be_v the_o rock_n whereof_o christ_n speak_v 4_o 83_o ab_fw-la two_o sort_n of_o confession_n one_o in_o word_n another_o in_o work_n 4_o 46_o a_o the_o confession_n of_o devil_n &_o how_o they_o testify_v of_o christ_n 1_n 13_o b_o the_o antiquity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n confute_v 3_o 218_o b_o 219_o b_o 217_o ab_fw-la 114_o a_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o west_n church_n 4_o 252_o b_o sin_n commit_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n therein_o 3_o 236_o b_o instéed_n of_o satisfaction_n 3_o 236_o b_o why_o it_o be_v invent_v 3_o 225_o a_o &_o why_o abolish_v 3_o 218_o b_o 219_o a_o confirmation_n the_o beginning_n of_o confirmation_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n 3_o 211_o a_o anoint_v use_v in_o confirmation_n 4_o 15_o b_o ¶_o look_v sacrament_n congregation_n to_o enter_v or_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o congregation_n what_o it_o be_v among_o the_o jew_n 2_o 470_o b_o ¶_o look_v church_n conjunction_n what_o manner_n of_o conjunction_n we_o have_v with_o christ_n 3_o 78_o a_o 79_o a_o 4_o 144_o in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o faith_n 4_o 175_o b_o 176_o a_o 179._o 180_o a_o no_o need_n of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n thereto_o 3_o 79_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n 3_o 316_o a_o 317_o b_o 328_o b_o two_o sort_n of_o conjunction_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n 3_o 78_o b_o 79_o a_o conjuration_n by_o who_o conjuration_n must_v be_v use_v only_o and_o alone_o 1_n 91_o b_o against_o they_o be_v use_v at_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o dead_a saint_n 1_n 68_o b_o certain_z in_o the_o church_n 1_n 91a_n the_o devil_n feign_v himself_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o they_o 1_n 67_o a_o of_o solomon_n exorcism_n or_o conjuration_n and_o why_o he_o use_v they_o 1_o 91_o ab_fw-la origens_n opinion_n of_o exorcism_n or_o conjuration_n at_o the_o grave_n of_o dead_a saint_n 1_n 68_o b_o add_v to_o baptism_n and_o why_o 4_o 128_o b_o ¶_o look_v exorcism_n conjurer_n the_o jew_n have_v conjurer_n or_o exorcist_n among_o they_o and_o how_o long_o they_o continue_v 1_n 91_o ab_fw-la of_o some_o which_o have_v the_o name_n but_o want_v the_o grace_n due_a to_o the_o name_n ●_o 91_o b_o ¶_o look_n exorcist_n &_o magician_n conscience_n what_o conscience_n be_v 3_o 165_o b_o of_o the_o wonderful_a force_n thereof_o and_o wherein_o it_o appear_v 1_o 15_o b_o in_o what_o case_n it_o be_v to_o be_v beléeve_v 3_o 98_o b_o whether_o faith_n signify_v the_o same_o 3_o 98b_n how_o it_o be_v trouble_v after_o sin_n commit_v 3_o 203ab_v of_o fear_n come_v of_o a_o evil_a conscience_n 3_o 69_o a_o the_o property_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 165_o b_o 166_o a_o wherein_o it_o exercise_v her_o power_n 3_o 165_o a_o how_o it_o may_v make_v a_o work_n good_a or_o evil_n 3_o 165_o a_o the_o feel_v of_o the_o same_o do_v testify_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n &_o how_o 1_o 12_o b_o how_o necessary_a a_o good_a one_o be_v 3_o ●65a_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a schoolmaster_n unto_o us._n 3_o 166_o a_o how_o another_o man_n conscience_n be_v wound_v 3_o 164_o a_o consecration_n consecration_n and_o dedication_n differ_v 4_o 124_o b_o how_o the_o father_n understand_v the_o word_n consecration_n 4_o 172_o a_o consecration_n of_o prince_n by_o bishop_n &_o why_o 4_o 236_o b_o 237_o a_o of_o temple_n house_n city_n wall_n etc._n etc._n 4_o 123_o ab_fw-la consecration_n of_o profane_a thing_n to_o holy_a use_n 4_o 247_o b_o 248_o a_o of_o fruit_n 4_o 127_o b_o of_o child_n 4_o 114ab_v of_o the_o consecration_n of_o minister_n 4_o 13_o b_o of_o meat_n 4_o 123_o b_o of_o font_n twice_o a_o year_n 4_o 127_o a_o how_o foul_o they_o err_v which_o close_o m●…ter_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n at_o the_o sacrament_n 4_o 105_o a_o of_o what_o strength_n the_o name_n thereof_o be_v 4_o 123_o a_o what_o thing_n must_v be_v only_o use_v in_o the_o outward_a 〈◊〉_d 4_o 126_o b_o the_o popish_a consecration_n of_o minister_n 4_o 13_o b_o 14_o a_o 126_o b_o papistical_a consecration_n of_o church_n 4_o 124_o b_o 125_o a_o 66a_n why_o the_o papistical_a kind_n must_v be_v reject_v 4_o 126_o a_o consolation_n consolation_n by_o the_o scripture_n in_o diverse_a our_o distress_n 1_n 44_o b_o 45_o ab_fw-la conspiracy_n whether_o conspiracy_n against_o prince_n be_v lawful_a 4_o 325_o b_o 326_o ab_fw-la ¶_o look_v treason_n constancy_n how_o perseverance_n and_o constancy_n do_v differ_v 3_o 184_o ab_fw-la the_o constancy_n of_o diverse_a ethnik_n 3_o 277_o ab_fw-la of_o anararchus_n and_o zend_v in_o their_o torment_n 2_o 284_o b_o of_o m._n attilius_n regulus_n 2_o 394_o a_o 539_o a_o of_o the_o jew_n against_o the_o macedonian_n and_o roman_n 4_o 243_o a_o of_o naboth_n 4_o 32_o a_o 33_o b_o of_o christ_n 2_o 620_o a_o contemplation_n contemplation_n a_o great_a part_n of_o man_n felicity_n 1_n 5_o a_o eustratius_n opinion_n touch_v the_o same_o reject_v and_o why_o 1_o 149_o b_o 150_o a_o and_o what_o felicity_n be_v therein_o 1_n 149_o b_o whether_o the_o pleasure_n which_o spring_n of_o it_o do_v he_o 1_o 138_o ab_fw-la who_o they_o be_v that_o give_v themselves_o thereto_o 1_o 149b_v reckon_v up_o of_o aristotle_n as_o a_o end_n 1_n 5_o a_o the_o right_a use_n of_o a_o life_n consist_v in_o civil_a action_n and_o contemplation_n 1_n 150_o ab_fw-la of_o actual_a contemplation_n &_o what_o the_o philosopher_n and_o holy_a scripture_n say_v thereof_o 1_n 16_o b_o why_o theological_a contemplation_n go_v before_o active_a 1_n 16_o b_o contemplation_n contemplation_n have_v pleasure_n always_o join_v with_o they_o and_o why_o 1_n 135_o b_o contempt_n three_o kind_n of_o contempt_n or_o contumely_n two_o 528b_n of_o god_n word_n a_o heinous_a sin_n 2_o 554_o b_o of_o good_a man_n purchase_v destruction_n prove_v 1_n 143_o b_o in_o what_o case_n of_o the_o same_o imprecation_n and_o curse_n be_v admit_v 2_o 398_o b_o 399_o a_o contentment_n a_o example_n for_o contentment_n with_o our_o estate_n 3_o 188_o b_o 259_o b_o contention_n cause_n of_o contention_n &_o trouble_n 4_o 321_o b_o 322_o a_o the_o kind_n thereof_o and_o when_o it_o be_v name_v a_o schism_n 4_o 320_o b_o contention_n betwixt_o aiaz_n and_o vlisy_n and_o why_o 2_o 550_o a_o between_o augustine_n and_o jerom._n 2_o 544_o b_o 545_o a_o for_o the_o priesthood_n in_o david_n time_n ●_o 247_o b_o vespasian_n judgement_n in_o a_o case_n of_o contention_n between_o a_o senator_n and_o a_o knight_n of_o rome_n 2_o 401_o b_o which_o party_n be_v accusable_a in_o a_o contention_n 4_o 323_o a_o paul_n at_o contention_n with_o himself_o and_o reconcile_v 2_o 548_o ab_fw-la p._n martyr_n opinion_n touch_v contention_n about_o religion_n 2_o 391_o a_o ¶_o look_v schism_n contingent_a thing_n contingent_a be_v foresee_v of_o god_n only_o 1_n 62_o a_o ¶_o look_v chance_n continuance_n continuance_n in_o sin_n be_v most_o detestable_a 2_o 554_o b_o contrary_n whether_o contrary_n may_v be_v derive_v from_o one_o original_a 3_o 289_o b_o 290_o a_o what_o be_v require_v in_o they_o 2_o 294_o b_o 295_o a_o what_o the_o rule_n of_o they_o be_v 3_o 290_o a_o 213_o b_o their_o nature_n 4_o 202_o a_o a_o argument_n draw_v
whence_o music_n have_v original_a 3_o 311_o b_o the_o wonder_a effect_n thereof_o over_o the_o affection_n 3_o 312_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o church_n 3_o 313_o a_o caution_n in_o the_o use_v thereof_o 3_o 314_o a_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n 3_o 313_o ab_fw-la when_o it_o and_o mitre_n shall_v be_v use_v of_o the_o ethnic_n 3_o 312_o a_o musician_n elizeus_fw-la call_v for_o a_o musician_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v recover_v his_o right_a mind_n 1_n 22b_n my._n mystery_n a_o mystery_n distinguish_v 4_o 17_o a_o the_o general_a signification_n thereof_o 4_o 97_o b_o how_o it_o and_o sacrament_n differ_v and_o agree_v 4_o 96_o b_o of_o that_o signify_v in_o matrimony_n 3_o 211_o b_o mystery_n certain_a mystery_n of_o god_n exempt_v from_o our_o judgement_n 2_o 532_o b_o whereunto_o we_o can_v natural_o attain_v 1_n 10_o b_o god_n rather_o reveal_v they_o unto_o the_o simple_a than_o to_o the_o wise_a 1_o 37_o b_o unto_o who_o those_o of_o christ_n be_v not_o know_v in_o the_o old_a law_n 3_o 346_o ab_fw-la unto_o they_o nothing_o must_v be_v add_v 4_o 97_o a_o mystery_n of_o ceres_n 4_o 96_o b_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o ethnik_n be_v sumptuous_a 4_o 112_o b_o 113_o a_o ¶_o look_v sacrament_n na._n naaman_n the_o example_n of_o naaman_n fall_v before_o the_o idol_n expound_v 3_o 263_o ab_fw-la 264_o ab_fw-la he_o know_v his_o fact_n to_o be_v unblamable_a and_o offensive_a 2_o 319a_o allege_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o ydolatrie_n 2_o 318_o b_o 319_o a_o but_o a_o novice_n in_o the_o true_a religion_n of_o god_n 2_o 319_o a_o ¶_o look_n ydol_n and_o ydolatrie_n name_n name_n of_o thing_n be_v partly_o natural_a and_o partly_o after_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o giver_n 2_o 590_o b_o 591_o a_o of_o certain_a name_n attribute_v unto_o god_n and_o their_o signification_n 1_n 100_o 101._o ¶_o look_v god_n nature_n a_o definition_n of_o nature_n and_o what_o the_o same_o be_v 1_o 57_o a_o diverse_a signification_n thereof_o 4_o 175_o a_o it_o be_v as_o the_o philosopher_n affirm_v the_o original_a of_o motion_n 2_o 133_o a_o what_o it_o be_v able_a to_o do_v about_o virtue_n and_o vice_n 1_n 55_o a_o how_o augustine_n understand_v the_o word_n nature_n 1_n 188_o b_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n do_v mesi●semble_v god_n and_o how_o 1_n 12_o b_o be_v destitute_a of_o grace_n disturb_v 3_o 94_o ab_fw-la how_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o of_o christ_n do_v differ_v 3_o 78_o a_o how_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v good_a and_o not_o good_a 2_o 227_o a_o we_o have_v not_o the_o original_n of_o a_o nature_n perfect_a but_o of_o a_o nature_n corrupt_v which_o proove_v original_a sin_n 2_o 217_o a_o the_o manicher_n error_n that_o both_o it_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o it_o be_v create_v evil_a by_o god_n 2_o 258_o b_o corrupt_a not_o only_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n but_o also_o by_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o our_o progenitor_n 2_o 220_o a_o whether_o as_o it_o be_v now_o corrupt_a it_o can_v resist_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n 3_o 47_o a_o as_o it_o be_v institute_v it_o be_v without_o corruption_n 3_o 23_o b_o 2_o 219_o a_o the_o opinion_n of_o ethnike_n declare_v the_o naughtiness_n thereof_o 2_o 227_o ab_fw-la as_o touch_v nature_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o man_n 3_o 15_o b_o 16_o a_o by_o what_o kind_n of_o nature_n e●ds_v precept_n be_v know_v to_o be_v just_a 2_o 475b_n pighius_fw-la interpretation_n how_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o nature_n confute_v 2_o 217_o b_o 218_o a_o his_o false_a imagination_n touch_v the_o integretie_a thereof_o in_o their_o first_o man_n 2_o 229_o b_o galens_n opinion_n that_o virtue_n and_o vice_n be_v not_o in_o man_n by_o nature_n ●_o 54b_v 55_o a_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o first_o man_n and_o our_o nature_n now_o corrupt_v 1_n 187b_n how_o our_o nature_n must_v be_v change_v that_o god_n law_n may_v be_v pleasant_a unto_o we_o 3_o 46_o b_o two_o property_n of_o our_o nature_n too_o wir_fw-ge action_n and_o contemplation_n 1_n 150_o a_o that_o man_n in_o punish_v and_o reward_v respect_v not_o whether_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o industry_n or_o by_o nature_n 1_n 55_o a_o nazarite_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o nazarit_n vow_n 3_o 27_o b_o forbid_v to_o drink_v wine_n 3_o 171_o a_o carry_v some_o show_n of_o our_o monk_n 4_o 7_o a_o ne._n necessary_a what_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v necessary_a absolute_o and_o conditional_o 1_n 174_o a_o how_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v necessary_a and_o how_o casual_a 1_n 174_o b_o how_o thing_n depend_v of_o chance_n do_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v necessary_a prove_v 1_n 125_o ab_fw-la necessity_n fatal_a and_o in_o other_o sense_n a_o definition_n of_o necessity_n 3_o 34_o b_o of_o fatal_a necessity_n and_o what_o it_o be_v 3_o 4_o b_o 5_o a_o against_o the_o erroneous_a doctrine_n thereof_o 3_o 36_o a_o favourer_n of_o fatal_a necessity_n and_o their_o reason_n 3_o 38_o ab_fw-la 39_o a_o two_o 277_o b_o 1_o 172_o a_o 169_o a_o 175_o b_o the_o old_a writer_n judge_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v be_v do_v thereby_o and_o that_o god_n himself_o be_v hold_v therewith_o 2_o 276_o a_o whether_o necessity_n be_v a_o let_v unto_o god_n proiudence_n 1_n 166_o b_o unto_o the_o prediction_n of_o astrologer_n a_o mere_a necessity_n must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v 2_o 279_o b_o 280_o a_o whether_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o necessity_n be_v under_o god_n providence_n 1_n 172_o b_o two_o sundry_a respect_n to_o be_v mark_v in_o thing_n touch_v their_o necessity_n 1_o 174_o a_o every_o thing_n while_o it_o be_v be_v of_o necessity_n 3_o 41_o a_o that_o something_o though_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n yet_o be_v voluntary_a 1_n 198_o b_o that_o some_o thing_n do_v of_o necessity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v 2_o 273_o b_o 274_o a_o to_o do_v voluntary_o and_o to_o do_v of_o necessity_n be_v not_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o 2_o 257_o a_o whether_o by_o predestination_n necessity_n be_v infer_v 3_o 34_o b_o a_o geometrical_a necessity_n 3_o 34_o b_o of_o certainty_n and_o of_o coaction_n 3_o 35ab_n of_o supposition_n and_o absolute_a 2_o 278_o b_o proof_n of_o supposition_n 3_o 35_o b_o 36_o a_o 11_o b_o 1_n 169_o a_o 209_o b_o ●_o 174_o a_o 295_o b_o 2_o 610_o b_o 611_o a_o it_o do_v not_o overthrow_v our_o free_a will_n 2_o 178_o b_o it_o be_v in_o god_n foreknowledge_n 1_n 209_o b_o necessity_n of_o certainty_n or_o infalliblenesse_n 3_o 35_o b_o 36_o a_o 37_o ab_fw-la of_o consequence_n and_o of_o the_o consequent_a 3_o 35_o ab_fw-la 2_o 278_o b_o 279_o a_o of_o compulsion_n &_o of_o nature_n 2_o 610_o b_o 611_o a_o two_o sort_n of_o necessity_n out_o of_o augustine_n 3_o 39b_fw-ge inward_a and_o outward_a necessity_n divide_v 3_o 34_o b_o what_o necessity_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o will_n 3_o 4●_n a_o of_o a_o necessity_n of_o sin_v which_o have_v no_o compulsion_n join_v therewith_o 2_o 256_o b_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_a in_o the_o wicked_a 2_o 257_o a_o necessity_n take_v not_o away_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n 3_o 2d_o b_o many_o thing_n of_o necessity_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2_o 611_o a_o as_o to_o be_v good_a and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o drive_v by_o force_n to_o be_v good_a prove_v 2_o 256_o b_o his_o will_n bring_v not_o necessity_n to_o thing_n 3_o 40_o b_o what_o necessity_n belong_v to_o his_o foreknowledge_n 3_o 41_o a_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o any_o necessity_n because_o all_o thing_n to_o he_o be_v possible_a 2_o 276_o a_o necessity_n make_v thing_n unlawful_a lawful_a 3_o 196_o b_o 197_o a_o 2_o 304_o b_o 305_o a_o whether_o the_o poor_a must_v be_v holpen_v before_o their_o extreme_a necessity_n 2_o 521_o b_o in_o a_o case_n of_o extreme_a necessity_n &_o poverty_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v 2_o 519_o a_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n be_v in_o more_o necessity_n than_o other_o 2_o 52●_n a_o ¶_o look_v adversity_n negligence_n a_o definition_n of_o negligence_n 3_o 68_o a_o neighbour_n the_o word_n neighbour_n of_o a_o large_a signification_n &_o how_o 2_o 519_o b_o who_o be_v our_o neighbour_n and_o how_o such_o as_o be_v enemy_n one_o to_o another_o be_v neighbour_n notwithstanding_o 2_o 404_o b_o the_o name_n of_o neighbour_n pertain_v not_o to_o kindred_n or_o acquaintance_n only_o 2_o 519_o b_o how_o we_o must_v deal_v with_o our_o neighbour_n in_o a_o case_n of_o trespass_n 2_o 557_o b_o how_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o he_o 3_o 48_o a_o we_o ought_v to_o spend_v our_o very_a life_n for_o his_o sake_n two_o 519_o b_o neighbour_n what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v when_o we_o see_v our_o neighbour_n
opinion_n of_o the_o examination_n of_o opinion_n whether_o they_o be_v orthodoxal_a 3_o 46_o a_o erroneous_a whereto_o compare_v 3_o 240_o a_o how_o the_o papist_n will_v have_v they_o try_v 4_o 46_o b_o two_o hundred_o fourscore_o &_o eight_o may_v be_v reckon_v of_o felicity_n 1_n 133_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o affect_n be_v opinion_n as_o the_o stoike_v think_v 2_o 407_o b_o two_o opinion_n show_v how_o all_o truth_n come_v of_o god_n 1_o 11_o b_o or._n oracle_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o oracle_n show_v what_o it_o be_v 1_n 19_o b_o how_o it_o happen_v that_o god_n take_v the_o philistine_n word_n for_o a_o oracle_n 1_n 61_o b_o oracle_n the_o manner_n of_o give_v out_o oracle_n by_o drim_n and_o thumim_n 1_n 58_o b_o 59_o a_o why_o we_o be_v without_o they_o that_o the_o jew_n have_v ●_o 260_o b_o 261_o a_o sometime_o they_o of_o the_o ethnike_v make_v answer_n by_o dream_n 1_n 37._o watch_n at_o dead_a man_n sepulcher_n to_o receive_v they_o 1_n 73_o b_o the_o devil_n double_a meaning_n note_v in_o they_o 1_n 83_o a_o plutarch_n reason_n why_o they_o cease_v 1_n 92_o ab_fw-la the_o true_a cause_n why_o oracle_n cease_v 2_o 359_o a_o 1_o 92_o a_o orator_n cicero_n description_n of_o a_o perfect_a orator_n 4_o 26_o b_o his_o travel_n therein_o be_v not_o needless_a 3_o 110_o a_o the_o end_n of_o he_o and_o whereto_o his_o persuade_v serve_v 1_n 7_o a_o orator_n what_o be_v count_v a_o fault_n in_o orator_n ●_o 19_o a_o who_o be_v to_o be_v reprehend_v for_o their_o eloquence_n 2_o 410_o b_o 411_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o orator_n to_o move_v man_n affect_n 2_o 410_o b_o 4_o 256_o b_o 257_o a_o order_n a_o definition_n of_o order_n out_o of_o augustine_n 4_o 65_o b_o 320_o b_o 1_n 167_o a_o a_o order_n of_o rule_n institute_v by_o god_n among_o man_n 4_o 320_o b_o 32_o a_o abolish_v by_o trouble_n or_o sedition_n 4_o 321_o a_o the_o order_n of_o the_o member_n of_o man_n body_n 4_o 321_o a_o whether_o holy_a order_n be_v a_o sacrament_n 3_o 210_o b_o the_o same_o divide_a and_o how_o 3_o 212_o a_o order_n ecclesiastical_a 4_o 80_o a_o diverse_a degree_n thereof_o in_o the_o papistical_a church_n 4_o 133_o a_o ¶_o look_v church_n ornament_n ornament_n of_o church_n 4_o 66._o 67._o in_o salomon_n temple_n 4_o 66_o b_o in_o the_o church_n of_o mentz_n 4_o 66_o b_o what_o ornament_n woman_n may_v use_v and_o not_o use_v 2_o 508._o 509._o 510._o 511._o 512._o 513._o etc._n etc._n ot._n oth._n why_o a_o oath_n be_v invent_v and_o how_o inviolablie_o it_o shall_v be_v keep_v 2_o 374_o a_o 368_o a_o whether_o every_o one_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v 2_o 537_o a_o how_o many_o way_n god_n be_v call_v to_o witness_v therein_o 2_o 372_o ab_fw-la so_o man_n for_o a_o unjust_a cause_n must_v be_v cut_v off_o 2_o 517_o b_o in_o what_o case_n it_o may_v be_v break_v without_o perjury_n 2_o 538a_o what_o companion_n it_o shall_v have_v 2_o 549_o b_o whether_o be_v make_v to_o heretic_n and_o thief_n it_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v 2_o 583_o b_o what_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v therein_o of_o universality_n look_v well_o upon_o that_o 2_o 539_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o take_v it_o of_o a_o heathen_a by_o false_a god_n 2_o 304_o a_o what_o the_o hebrew_n call_v a_o oath_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 368_o a_o the_o faithful_a may_v take_v one_o of_o infidel_n by_o their_o idol_n 2_o 371_o b_o how_o the_o gospel_n mean_v that_o a_o oath_n come_v of_o evil_a 2_o 368_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o respect_n it_o be_v good_a and_o also_o bad_a 2_o 368_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o use_v it_o 2_o 3●9_n a_o why_o in_o every_o oath_n god_n be_v call_v to_o witness_v 2_o 368_o b_o 369_o a_o christ_n in_o say_v swear_v not_o at_o all_o forbid_v not_o a_o oth._n 2_o 369_o a_o in_o what_o case_n it_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o faith_n be_v keep_v find_v among_o man_n 2_o 368_o b_o of_o a_o oath_n make_v with_o crafty_a word_n and_o wrong_a meaning_n 2_o 371_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o case_n it_o must_v be_v take_v and_o in_o what_o not_o 2_o 368_o b_o a_o oath_n by_o idol_n be_v in_o no_o case_n permit_v 2_o 371_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o offer_v a_o oath_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v suspect_v of_o perjury_n 2_o 373_o b_o according_a to_o who_o mind_n a_o oath_n must_v be_v interpret_v 2_o 372_o b_o 373_o a_o it_o must_v not_o be_v use_v in_o trifle_a and_o light_a cause_n 2_o 371_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v it_o by_o saint_n 2_o 372_o a_o of_o a_o avouch_a oath_n and_o a_o promise_a oath_n 2_o 537_o a_o the_o oath_n of_o socrates_n by_o a_o dog_n and_o a_o goose_n and_o the_o manichy_n oath_n by_o light_n condemn_a 2_o 372_o a_o augustine_n commend_v a._n regulus_n for_o keep_v his_o oath_n even_o to_o the_o hazard_n of_o his_o life_n 2_o 371a_v of_o the_o gabionite_n oath_n wherein_o the_o israelite_n promise_v that_o which_o be_v against_o god_n decree_n 2_o 370_o b_o 373_o a_o of_o david_n unto_o semei_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o die_v when_o he_o give_v solomon_n charge_v afterwards_o to_o the_o contrary_n 2_o 372_o b_o oath_n four_o kind_n of_o oath_n mention_v by_o the_o lawyer_n 2_o 368_o b_o 372_o a_o what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v refrain_v and_o blame_v therein_o two_o 370_o ab_fw-la by_o creature_n not_o to_o be_v light_o esteem_v 2_o 369b_n what_o be_v void_a and_o of_o none_o effect_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o solemn_o swear_v 2_o 370a_o b_o direct_v and_o indirect_a and_o how_o they_o may_v be_v use_v 2_o 372_o ab_fw-la unadvised_o make_v must_v not_o be_v perform_v 2_o 373_o a_o where_o they_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n 2_o 373_o b_o 374a_o a_o proverb_n in_o rome_n touch_v oath_n 2_o 537_o b_o oath_n of_o curssing_n and_o that_o holy_a man_n have_v use_v they_o 2_o 369_o b_o 372_o a_o pa._n pain_n that_o infant_n shall_v suffer_v no_o sensible_a pain_n for_o sin_n not_o pighius_fw-la his_o reason_n 2_o 216_o b_o paint_v of_o paint_v the_o face_n with_o the_o end_n the_o matter_n &_o efficient_a cause_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 508_o ab_fw-la use_v of_o the_o briton_n to_o look_v terrible_o 2_o 509_o a_o the_o reason_n of_o such_o as_o will_v prove_v it_o lawful_a 2_o 509_o ab_fw-la a_o confutation_n of_o their_o reason_n two_o 514a_v b_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o otherwise_o against_o it_o 2_o 510a_o b_o what_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v think_v thereof_o 2_o 511_o ab_fw-la 512_o a_o painter_n why_o clement_n and_o tertullian_n detest_a painter_n two_o 341_o a_o and_o whether_o luke_n be_v a_o painter_n 335_o ab_fw-la papist_n the_o papist_n tear_n and_o mangle_v the_o sacrament_n 4_o 53_o a_o whether_o we_o or_o they_o have_v break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 96_o a_o 86_o a_o whether_o all_o of_o they_o have_v perish_v 4_o 91_o a_o a_o view_n of_o their_o do_n 4_o 69_o ab_fw-la they_o define_v the_o church_n otherwise_o than_o we_o 4_o 92_o a_o with_o what_o superstition_n they_o have_v infect_v baptism_n 4_o 126_o b_o 127_o ab_fw-la 128_o a_o whereto_o their_o craft_n tend_v 4_o 87_o b_o whether_o we_o or_o they_o have_v give_v cause_n of_o schism_n 4_o 87b_n 88_o 89._o how_o they_o have_v corrupt_v true_a doctrine_n 4_o 70_o a_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o most_o damnable_a crime_n 4_o 71_o b_o danger_n in_o join_v ourselves_o with_o they_o 4_o 86_o b_o 87_o a_o how_o they_o consecrate_v man_n 4_o 126_o b_o they_o mislike_v of_o a_o christian_a council_n 4_o 70_o a_o their_o sacramental_n 4_o 127_o a_o they_o be_v neither_o catholic_a nor_o apostolic_a 4_o 93_o b_o what_o they_o that_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o must_v do_v 4_o 96a_o b_o cause_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o they_o 4_o 86b_n 87._o 88_o 89_o ab_fw-la they_o will_v pull_v the_o priesthood_n from_o christ_n 4_o 127_o a_o how_o they_o misconstrue_v the_o scripture_n 4_o 74_o b_o their_o doctrine_n and_o what_o it_o teach_v 3_o 262_o a_o of_o the_o shave_n of_o themselves_o 3_o 178_o b_o to_o 〈◊〉_d end_n they_o enjoin_v fasting_n 3_o 224_o ab_fw-la the_o difference_n between_v their_o gospel_n and_o the_o ●pest●…_n 4_o 87_o a_o against_o themselves_o 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n ●_o 223b_n how_o overthwart_o they_o be_v 〈…〉_o superstition_n 3_o 178_o b_o just_a cause_n of_o separate_a ourselves_o from_o they_o 4_o 69_o b_o the_o mane●…_n their_o preach_n 2_o 63_o 2_o a_o they_o be_v against_o augustine_n
set_v down_o whereby_o man_n be_v provoke_v thereto_o 2_o 368_o b_o not_o so_o ill_a a_o crime_n as_o adultery_n 2_o 479_o a_o fraud_n undo_v it_o not_o but_o ti_v it_o fast_o 2_o 549_o a_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v shake_v so_o soon_o as_o the_o law_n concern_v it_o be_v make_v 2_o 371_o a_o in_o what_o case_n a_o oath_n may_v be_v break_v without_o it_o 2_o 538_o a_o commit_v in_o use_v deceitefull_a word_n in_o swear_v 2_o 371_o a_o a_o severe_a chastisement_n thereof_o both_o in_o the_o offender_n and_o they_o that_o know_v it_o hold_v their_o peace_n 2_o 374_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o offer_v a_o oath_n to_o he_o that_o be_v suspect_v of_o perjury_n two_o 373_o b_o ¶_o look_v oth_n and_o swear_n permission_n of_o permission_n to_o commit_v sin_n and_o do_v evil_a and_o whether_o such_o permission_n be_v in_o god_n or_o no._n 1_o 1●6_n ab_fw-la 190_o b_o 206_o a_o 202_o b_o 203_o ab_fw-la how_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o will_n 3_o 36_o b_o 37_o a_o in_o permission_n of_o temptation_n there_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o proove_v that_o he_o tempt_v 1_n 211a_o of_o dispense_n permission_n and_o full_o grow_v permission_n 1_n 200_o b_o in_o god_n permission_n of_o the_o jew_n cruel_o to_o crucify_v christ_n there_o be_v a_o will_n of_o god_n not_o to_o hinder_v their_o naughty_a will_n 1_o 199_o a_o how_o the_o word_n permission_n be_v understand_v in_o scripture_n 1_n 203b_v ¶_o look_v will_n of_o god_n persecution_n whether_o slight_a in_o persecution_n be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a 3_o 287_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v good_a 3_o 288_o b_o flight_n be_v lawful_a upon_o condition_n 3_o 287_o b_o 288_o a_o reasins_z why_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v shun_v 3_o 288_o b_o 289_o ab_fw-la 290_o a_o whether_o flight_n be_v lawful_a for_o a_o minister_n or_o pastor_n 3_o 288_o ab_fw-la 4_o 21_o a_o what_o minister_n may_v fly_v and_o what_o minister_n may_v carry_v at_o home_o 1_o 60_o a_o the_o nature_n thereof_o be_v not_o to_o abrogate_v the_o law_n 2_o 323_o b_o why_o the_o apostle_n give_v no_o precept_n of_o flight_n in_o that_o case_n 3_o 290_o b_o what_o david_n flight_n in_o the_o persecution_n of_o saul_n teach_v us._n 3_o 29●_n b_o 292._o 293._o persecution_n the_o effect_n of_o god_n persecution_n upon_o the_o godly_a 1_n 172_o b_o ¶_o look_v flight_n perseverance_n how_o perseverance_n and_o constancy_n do_v differ_v 3_o 184_o b_o person_n where_o respect_v of_o person_n be_v find_v and_o not_o find_v 3_o 201_o a_o persuasion_n how_o effectual_a a_o assure_a persuasion_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v 3_o 9_o a_o peter_n what_o peter_n have_v peculiar_a above_o the_o other_o apostle_n 4_o 82_o a_o 83_o ab_fw-la whether_o his_o confession_n may_v be_v call_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 33_o ab_fw-la whether_o he_o and_o paul_n can_v be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n both_o at_o one_o time_n 4_o ●9_n b_o whether_o the_o primasie_n of_o the_o popedom_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o 4_o 82_o a_o a_o fable_n touch_v christ_n and_o he_o 4_o 79_o a_o why_o he_o be_v call_v cephas_n 4_o 74_o b_o diverse_a defect_n in_o he_o appliable_a to_o the_o pope_n 4_o 76_o a_o whether_o he_o be_v chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n 4_o 80_o a_o why_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n only_o feed_v my_o sheep_n 4_o 84_o b_o 85a_o christ_n word_n peter_n love_v so_o thou_o i_o etc._n etc._n expound_v 4_o 84_o ab_fw-la thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n expound_v 4_o 82a_n b_o 83_o ab_fw-la ph._n phantasie_n the_o great_a and_o effectual_a power_n of_o the_o fantasy_n 1_n 77_o b_o by_o the_o power_n thereof_o a_o man_n may_v think_v he_o see_v that_o which_o he_o see_v not_o 1_n 89_o a_o fantasy_n whether_o angel_n be_v body_n or_o but_o fantasy_n 1_n 87_o b_o 88_o a_o ¶_o look_v imagination_n pharisy_n whence_o the_o name_n of_o pharisy_n have_v beginning_n 3_o 337_o a_o they_o affirm_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 3_o 340_o a_o philistine_n the_o philistine_n come_v to_o some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n by_o take_v of_o the_o ark_n 1_n 14_o a_o philosophy_n philosophy_n spring_v of_o admiration_n and_o how_o 1_n 63_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o god_n word_n and_o it_o 1_n 58_o a_o how_o one_o thing_n be_v teach_v one_o way_n by_o divinity_n and_o another_o way_n in_o philosophy_n 1_n 17_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o same_o and_o unto_o what_o thing_n the_o knowledge_n thereof_o extend_v 2_o 300_o b_o into_o what_o part_n cicero_n distinguish_v it_o 2_o 302_o a_o aristotle_n justly_o blame_v for_o exclude_v a_o young_a man_n from_o hear_v it_o and_o his_o reason_n 1_n 52_o b_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o by_o what_o venom_n and_o corruption_n the_o devil_n defile_v the_o same_o two_o 302_o b_o define_v by_o plato_n 1_o 159a_o divide_v into_o active_a and_o contemplative_a 2_o 300_o b_o and_o how_o they_o differ_v 301a_o divide_v into_o moral_a economicall_a and_o political_a 2_o 301_o b_o speculative_a divide_v into_o three_o part_n supernatural_a natural_a and_o mathematical_a 2_o 301_o b_o speculative_a prefer_v before_o the_o active_a and_o why_o 2_o 301_o a_o active_a and_o contemplantive_a mention_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2_o 302_o b_o why_o in_o divinity_n speculative_a go_v before_o active_a 2_o 302_o b_o 303_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o philosophy_n paul_n reprove_v 2_o 302_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o christian_a godliness_n 2_o 303_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o study_v it_o two_o 302_o a_o the_o end_n thereof_o and_o christian_n godliness_n 2_o 303_o a_o whereto_o it_o tend_v 1_n 17_o a_o the_o great_a profit_n that_o the_o author_n thereof_o bring_v to_o the_o world_n declare_v by_o comparison_n 2_o 302_o a_o why_o chrysostome_n call_v the_o true_a religion_n philosophy_n 2_o 428_o a_o pythagoras_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o name_n and_o how_o 2_o 300_o b_o cicero_n commendation_n concern_v moral_a philosophy_n 2_o 303_o b_o 304_o a_o two_o thing_n to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o peripatetical_a philosophy_n 1_n 54_o a_o philosopher_n the_o pride_n of_o philosopher_n note_v through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o natural_a thing_n 1_n two_o a_o 4_o 21_o b_o they_o rest_v in_o second_o cause_n 3_o 258_o b_o they_o despair_v procure_v by_o example_n 1_n 11_o b_o they_o yield_v not_o themselves_o to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n 1_o 11_o b_o to_z what_o intent_n they_o seem_v to_o make_v their_o writing_n obscure_a 1_n 11_o a_o the_o great_a the_o foul_a of_o life_n 1_n 11_o b_o they_o hide_v the_o knowledge_n which_o they_o have_v of_o god_n and_o how_o 1_n 11_o a_o how_o they_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n 1_o 12_o a_o they_o divide_v the_o unity_n of_o god_n into_o part_n 1_n 11_o ab_fw-la physic_n whether_o the_o end_n of_o physic_n be_v health_n 1_n 7_o a_o physician_n what_o physician_n the_o civil_a law_n condemn_v 4_o 128_o b_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o nature_n 2_o 515_o b_o their_o deal_n with_o one_o sick_a of_o a_o burn_a fever_n two_o 579_o b_o many_o funeral_n dishonourable_a unto_o they_o 2_o 414_o a_o pi._n picture_n the_o picture_n of_o christ_n be_v admit_v to_o be_v make_v 2_o 340_o b_o of_o his_o cross_n &_o other_o thing_n be_v lawful_a 2_o 341_o a_o decree_n that_o no_o picture_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o any_o stuff_n 2_o 340b_n of_o angel_n be_v lawful_a and_o how_o far_o forth_o 2_o 341_o a_o ¶_o look_v image_n picture_n of_o what_o thing_n there_o ma._n be_v picture_n and_o of_o what_o thing_n not_o 2_o 335_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v 4_o 178_o b_o against_o the_o sumptuous_a shameful_a and_o blasphemous_a one_o 2_o 341_o b_o whether_o luke_n be_v a_o drawer_n of_o picture_n or_o no_o as_o some_o say_v he_o be_v 2_o 335_o ab_fw-la ¶_o look_n image_n pilgrimage_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o continual_a pilgrimage_n of_o the_o rechabite_v 5_o 190_o a_o the_o pilgrimage_n of_o plato_n command_v 3_o 191_o b_o ¶_o look_v travel_v pilgrimage_n why_o the_o lacedaemonian_n forbid_v pilgrimage_n 3_o 192_o a_o unto_o saint_n condemn_v 3_o 176_o b_o pirasie_n pirasie_n count_v a_o virtue_n among_o the_o ancient_a greek_n 2_o 475_o b_o pitie_n foolish_a and_o unaduised_a pity_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o scripture_n 2_o 413_o b_o 414_o a_o it_o make_v great_a man_n to_o sin_n 4_o 248_o b_o 523_o a_o of_o foolish_a pity_n conceyve_v of_o soul_n depart_v 3_o 237_o b_o what_o kind_n p._n martyr_n esteem_v to_o be_v foolish_a 2_o 415_o ab_fw-la ¶_o look_v compassion_n and_o mercy_n pl._n place_n place_n do_v
they_o 4_o 247_o b_o 248_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o exempt_a clergy_n man_n from_o their_o subjection_n 4_o 239a_o in_o what_o case_n they_o and_o tyrant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v 2_o 316_o a_o good_a prince_n succeed_v tyrant_n 4_o 228_o a_o ethnic_n prince_n account_v matter_n of_o religion_n belong_v to_o they_o 4_o 244_o a_o principality_n what_o doctrine_n we_o have_v to_o gather_v by_o these_o word_n of_o paul_n principality_n power_n &c_n &c_n 1_n 120_o ab_fw-la principle_n there_o be_v two_o manner_n of_o principle_n of_o thing_n 3_o 113_o b_o privation_n what_o privation_n be_v mean_v to_o be_v original_a sin_n two_o 229_o b_o how_o the_o habit_n do_v never_o bring_v in_o the_o privation_n prove_v 1_n 181_o a_o from_o what_o privation_n there_o be_v no_o return_v to_o the_o former_a habit_n 2_o 636_o b_o privation_n follow_v present_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n habit_n be_v remoove_v away_o 1_n 181_o b_o privatives_n the_o nature_n and_o rule_n of_o privative_n 3_o 318_o a_o privilege_n privilege_n grant_v to_o clergy_n man_n 4_o 34_o ab_fw-la 239b_fw-la 240._o 241_o proceed_v a_o difference_n between_o proceed_v and_o generation_n though_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o find_v 1_n 107_o b_o of_o the_o proceed_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n about_o the_o same_o 1_n 107b_n procreation_n why_o the_o old_a father_n abstein_v so_o long_o from_o procreation_n of_o child_n 1_n 127_o b_o the_o goodness_n thereof_o must_v be_v consider_v by_o the_o proper_a effect_n that_o be_v in_o man_n 2_o 232_o b_o profession_n the_o common_a profession_n of_o all_o christian_n 4_o 310_o a_o profit_n this_o profit_n come_v by_o true_a doctrine_n that_o thereby_o the_o wicked_a condemn_v themselves_o as_o for_o example_n 1_n 14_o b_o 15_o a_o promise_n promise_v take_v and_o understand_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n 3_o 146_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n a_o promise_v bind_v with_o a_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v violate_v 2_o 538_o a_o 549_o a_o whether_o it_o must_v be_v keep_v with_o he_o that_o break_v promise_n 2_o 548_o b_o whether_o be_v make_v to_o heretic_n &_o thief_n it_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v 2_o 538_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v with_o our_o enemy_n 2_o 537_o a_o 371_o a_o of_o a_o promise_n make_v by_o force_n and_o fear_n 2_o 549_o a_o under_o what_o promise_n we_o deliver_v our_o child_n to_o be_v baptize_v 2_o 238_o b_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v indefinite_a and_o yet_o true_a notwithstanding_o touch_v salvation_n 2_o 238_o b_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n whereunto_o by_o believe_v we_o assent_v 3_o 58_o a_o the_o chief_a promise_n that_o be_v seal_v in_o a_o sacrament_n 4_o 98_o a_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v child_n of_o the_o promise_n 3_o 128_o b_o ¶_o look_v covenant_n promise_v god_n universal_a promise_n be_v to_o be_v restrain_v 3_o 30_o a_o 32_o a_o indifferent_a to_o all_o man_n 3_o 51_o a_o of_o general_n be_v gather_v particular_a 3_o 145_o a_o of_o they_o which_o circumcision_n seal_v 4_o 108_o b_o 109_o a_o whether_o the_o jew_n understand_v they_o which_o be_v seal_v by_o the_o ceremony_n 4_o 105_o ab_fw-la whether_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v make_v indefinite_o 3_o 145_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o kind_a faith_n have_v to_o do_v 2_o 549_o b_o in_o late_a we_o must_v have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o former_a 2_o 525_o a_o some_o doubt_n of_o they_o even_o in_o the_o godly_a 3_o 87_o a_o impediment_n that_o may_v seem_v to_o adnihilate_v they_o 3_o 60_o a_o the_o minister_n ought_v to_o remedy_v two_o let_n touch_v they_o 3_o 49_o b_o how_o just_a god_n be_v in_o they_o 2_o 549_o a_o the_o scripture_n reject_v none_o particular_o from_o they_o 3_o 50a_o against_o their_o error_n who_o say_v that_o those_o of_o the_o old_a father_n be_v only_o touch_v temporal_a thing_n 2_o 584_o b_o by_o faith_n we_o obtain_v they_o 3_o 150_o b_o 151_o a_o give_v both_o to_o faith_n and_o trust_n 3_o 90_o a_o why_o they_o &_o threaten_n be_v add_v to_o the_o law_n 2_o 573_o a_o what_o we_o must_v do_v when_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v join_v unto_o work_n 3_o 127_o b_o why_o god_n do_v not_o eftsoon_o perform_v they_o 3_o 303a_n why_o god_n will_v renew_v the_o selfsame_o promise_n 3_o 136_o a_o god_n do_v not_o only_o offer_v they_o but_o he_o bend_v the_o heart_n to_o embrace_v they_o 3_o 50_o a_o against_o doubt_v thereof_o 3_o 62_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3_o 113_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o they_o 3_o 274_o b_o 275_o a_o how_o the_o promise_v legal_a become_v evangelical_a 3_o 3●2_n b_o david_n just_a in_o his_o promise_n and_o word_n 2_o 550_o a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o original_n of_o prophecy_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o same_o 1_n 19_o a_o of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n thereof_o 1_n 18_o b_o it_o be_v no_o habit_n but_o a_o preparation_n or_o disposition_n be_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o quality_n 1_n 23_o a_o how_o needful_a a_o thing_n it_o have_v be_v for_o mankind_n 1_n 23a_o of_o the_o form_n thereof_o and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o god_n 1_o 18_o b_o a_o objection_n make_v against_o the_o auncientnesse_n thereof_o and_o the_o same_o answer_v 1_n 19_o a_o chrysostom_n opinion_n touch_v the_o want_n thereof_o among_o us._n 1_o 18_o b_o distinguish_v into_o a_o oracle_n a_o dream_n and_o a_o vision_n 1_n 19_o b_o that_o thereby_o god_n will_v be_v know_v unto_o man_n 1_n 17_o b_o not_o obtain_v by_o art_n industry_n &c_n &c_n how_o then_o 1_n 22_o b_o the_o error_n of_o the_o same_o according_a to_o s._n paul_n 1_o 18_o b_o a_o definition_n thereof_o and_o the_o diverse_a manner_n thereof_o 4_o 6_o ab_fw-la 1_n 19_o ab_fw-la the_o cause_n and_o matter_n of_o the_o same_o and_o whereabout_o it_o be_v use_v 1_n 18_o a_o the_o effect_n thereof_o declare_v in_o few_o word_n 1_n 22_o b_o use_v about_o thing_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v 1_n 18_o a_o it_o have_v a_o property_n common_a with_o other_o free_a gift_n and_o what_o the_o same_o be_v 1_n 22_o a_o why_o it_o be_v give_v 3_o 353a_o b_o how_o great_a a_o crime_n it_o be_v to_o contemn_v it_o 4_o 15_o b_o in_o woman_n as_o well_o as_o in_o man_n 4_o 7_o ab_fw-la what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n or_o word_n 1_n 17b_v what_o kind_n thereof_o may_v be_v attain_v by_o exercise_n and_o doctrine_n 1_n 22_o b_o take_v for_o interpret_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 1_n 23a_o b_o evil_a man_n sometime_o prophesy_v true_a thing_n and_o how_o 1_o 22a_n why_o god_n suffer_v they_o so_o to_o do_v 1_n 19_o a_o of_o prophecy_n by_o writing_n and_o also_o by_o deed_n 1_n 19_o b_o prophecy_n and_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n join_v together_o 1_n 23_o a_o a_o reason_n of_o ambrose_n make_v against_o such_o as_o think_v it_o to_o be_v natural_a 1_n 26_o a_o woman_n do_v prophesy_v and_o how_o that_o may_v agree_v with_o paul_n forbid_v woman_n to_o prophesy_v 1_o 20_o a_o why_o they_o be_v command_v to_o cover_v their_o head_n 4_o 7_o a_o a_o holy_a prophecy_n utter_v by_o caiphas_n be_v a_o evil_a man_n 1_o 51_o a_o how_o the_o bone_n of_o eliseus_n do_v prophesy_v 1_n 22_o b_o of_o a_o kind_n of_o foretell_v which_o be_v not_o prophesy_v 1_n 82_o a_o cavil_n for_o the_o adnihilate_v of_o daniel_n pprophecy_n 3_o 352_o b_o prophesieng_v whether_o prophesieng_v be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n 3_o 309_o b_o 310_o a_o prophecy_n prophecy_n soon_o fulfil_v than_o understand_v 3_o 386_o b_o before_o the_o law_n in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n 1_n 20_o a_o before_o the_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o yet_o be_v no_o let_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o man_n 3_o 6_o a_o in_o they_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o time_n as_o for_o example_n 1_o 20_o a_o how_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v prophecy_n 2_o 397_o b_o 398_o a_o of_o certain_a lie_n which_o augustine_n count_v prophecy_n 2_o 546_o a_o prophecy_n and_o testimony_n of_o christ_n 2_o 581_o a_o unto_o which_o of_o the_o jew_n the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n be_v obscure_a 3_o 346_o ab_fw-la touch_v christ_n kingdom_n metaphorical_a 3_o 397_o a_o of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o sibyl_n and_o what_o authentical_a writer_n have_v think_v of_o they_o 1_n 21_o a_o the_o montanist_n boast_v more_o of_o prophecy_n than_o ever_o do_v any_o other_o heretic_n and_o why_o 1_n 19_o a_o prophet_n wherein_o a_o prophet_n and_o a_o teacher_n do_v differ_v 1_n 18_o b_o assure_a token_n both_o of_o a_o good_a and_o of_o a_o bad_a 1_n
21_o b_o 22_o a_o his_o diverse_a name_n in_o hebrew_n and_o in_o latin_a and_o who_o be_v one_o 1_n 18_o a_o the_o name_n use_v in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o a_o interpreter_n as_o for_o example_n 1_o 23_o ab_fw-la 18_o a_o what_o he_o be_v call_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n 1_n 17_o b_o and_o what_o it_o signify_v ibidem_fw-la 18_o a_o wherein_o he_o and_o a_o priest_n do_v differ_v 1_n 18_o a_o about_o what_o thing_n he_o be_v occupy_v 1_n 18_o a_o the_o old_a israelite_n be_v never_o without_o a_o prophet_n 1_n 23_o b_o two_o sure_a argument_n or_o token_n of_o a_o true_a prophet_n 1_n 20_o b_o who_o he_o be_v that_o must_v be_v repute_v and_o take_v for_o one_o 1_n 22_o a_o prophet_n true_a and_o false_a token_n to_o discern_v true_a prophet_n and_o false_a 4_o 6_o b_o 1_o 20_o b_o they_o must_v not_o diminish_v the_o word_n nor_o add_v to_o of_o their_o own_o 1_n 20_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o doctor_n 4_o 6_o b_o degree_n of_o they_o &_o that_o they_o be_v not_o inspire_v all_o alike_o from_o heaven_n 1_n 19_o b_o of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n 4_o 6_o b_o a_o rule_n in_o read_v of_o they_o 3_o 354_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levic_n 4_o 6_o b_o they_o were_z to_z the_o high_a priest_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o the_o bishop_n 4_o 4a_o the_o authority_n of_o they_o be_v constant_a 3_o 38_o a_o how_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v prophet_n and_o become_v diviner_n 1_n 20_o b_o why_o god_n do_v sometime_o use_v the_o evil_a prophet_n 1_n 37_o b_o god_n reveal_v to_o the_o prophet_n the_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v do_v 3_o 38_o a_o in_o that_o they_o be_v prophet_n they_o can_v not_o err_v 1_n 8_o a_o how_o they_o apply_v their_o doctrine_n unto_o christ_n 2_o 596_o b_o what_o vision_n they_o be_v that_o make_v not_o prophet_n 1_n 36_o b_o why_o paul_n say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n 1_n 21_o b_o howe_n and_o in_o what_o case_n spirit_n may_v be_v call_v prophet_n 1_n 81_o b_o 82_o a_o school_n of_o they_o and_o wherefore_o they_o be_v appoint_v 1_n 22b_v whether_o god_n do_v compel_v they_o or_o no._n 1_o 21_o b_o by_o their_o life_n they_o must_v win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n 1_n 20_o b_o whether_o they_o do_v sure_o know_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o they_o foretell_v 1_n 22_o b_o they_o be_v not_o now_o so_o necessary_a as_o in_o former_a time_n and_o why_o 23_o a_o there_o be_v some_o still_o in_o the_o church_n although_o not_o so_o famous_a as_o in_o time_n past_a 1_n 24_o a_o there_o be_v many_o prophet_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n two_o 23_o b_o be_v in_o sundry_a place_n do_v write_v the_o selfsame_o word_n in_o their_o prophecy_n 2_o 363_o a_o they_o may_v be_v a_o certain_a occasion_n not_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o overthrow_n of_o kingdom_n 4_o 237_o ab_fw-la whether_o be_v inspire_v of_o god_n they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o say_v 1_n 21_o b_o the_o spirit_n that_o stir_v they_o up_o be_v sometime_o good_a sometime_o evil_a 1_n 19_o a_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o proverb_n what_o be_v saul_n among_o the_o prophet_n 3_o 20b_a prophet_n do_v sometime_o see_v thing_n print_v in_o their_o imagination_n and_o sometime_o see_v they_o outward_o 1_n 25b_v they_o must_v not_o be_v corrupt_v for_o favour_n or_o reward_v 1_n 20_o b_o they_o to_o who_o be_v show_v only_o the_o sign_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n account_v prophet_n &_o why_o 1_n 26_o a_o by_o what_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o father_n and_o prophet_n 1_o 26_o b_o 27_o a_o the_o child_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o who_o disciple_n they_o be_v 1_n 23_o b_o 4_o 6_o b_o in_o what_o respect_v paul_n and_o peter_n be_v prophet_n 1_n 23_o b_o more_o prophet_n when_o the_o church_n begin_v than_o now_o and_o why_o 1_n 18_o b_o that_o the_o prophet_n of_o idol_n have_v two_o certain_a token_n to_o be_v know_v by_o 1_o 21_o a_o a_o general_a rule_n to_o know_v true_a prophet_n by_o 1_n 22_o a_o sometime_o their_o prediction_n happen_v not_o as_o how_o 1_n 20_o b_o 21_o a_o of_o certain_a woman_n prophet_n express_v by_o name_n 1_n 20_o a_o which_o do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n 4_o 7_o a_o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o samuel_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o prophet_n that_o like_a to_o moses_n there_o be_v never_o any_o prophet_n and_o that_o among_o the_o child_n of_o woman_n there_o arise_v not_o a_o great_a than_o john_n baptist_n 1_n ●9_n ab_fw-la the_o devil_n prophet_n fare_v like_o mad_a man_n 1_o 21_o a_o that_o wicked_a man_n may_v be_v prophet_n and_o yet_o no_o friend_n to_o god_n 1_o 23_o a_o what_o god_n law_n determine_v touch_v the_o punishment_n of_o false_a prophet_n 2_o 389_o a_o propitiatory_a what_o be_v the_o propitiatory_a or_o mercy_n seat_n 2_o 356_o b_o 339_o a_o the_o place_n thereof_o 3_o 306_o b_o no_o more_o among_o the_o jew_n 2_o 577_o b_o proposition_n general_n proposition_n be_v to_o be_v restrain_v 3_o 26_o b_o 27_o a_o 30_o a_o 31_o ab_fw-la 32_o a_o 33_o ab_fw-la 145_o ab_fw-la 132_o b_o 133_o a_o 389_o ab_fw-la 380_o b_o 397_o b_o 398_o a_o 1_n 193_o b_o they_o make_v their_o particular_a true_a 3_o 143_o b_o conditional_a resolve_v not_o into_o categoricall_a 3_o 133_o b_o of_o particular_a be_v ill_o infer_v universal_a 4_o 30_o a_o two_o negative_a be_v not_o wont_v to_o conclude_v affirmative_a 3_o 239_o a_o providence_n a_o definition_n of_o providence_n 3_o 9a_n 1_n 170_o b_o 167_o a_o why_o it_o be_v perpetual_a 3_o 9_o a_o diverse_a notable_a point_n touch_v it_o 3_o 35_o b_o the_o epicure_n deny_v it_o and_o why_o so_o 1_n 170b_v what_o commodity_n and_o comfort_n we_o reap_v by_o a_o lively_a faith_n thereof_o 1_n 168_o a_o how_o it_o &_o predestination_n agree_v &_o differ_v 3_o 8b_n why_o the_o same_o be_v say_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o thing_n 3_o 8_o b_o it_o work_v orderly_o by_o cause_n &_o effect_n read_v how_o 2_o 26●a_o the_o philosopher_n yield_v not_o themselves_o thereto_o 1_n 11_o b_o too_o too_o contumelious_a a_o thing_n to_o exempt_a man_n from_o it_o and_o who_o do_v so_o 1_n 172_o a_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o peripatetik_n touch_v the_o same_o 1_n 154b_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o creature_n 1_n 12_o a_o whether_o it_o do_v bring_v any_o change_n in_o god_n as_o in_o man_n 1_n 168_o a_o whether_o it_o take_v away_o chance_n &_o fortune_n 1_n 168_o b_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v except_v from_o the_o same_o 1_n 200_o b_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n prove_v substantial_o 1_o 170ab_n whether_o the_o same_o be_v unchangeable_a 1_o 173_o b_o 174_o a_o whether_o it_o can_v admit_v any_o thing_n touch_v chance_n 1_n 174_o a_o 171_o b_o why_o the_o greek_n name_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_n 175_o b_o a_o firm_a and_o strong_a argument_n as_o some_o think_v against_o it_o 1_o 169_o a_o whether_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o necessity_n be_v under_o it_o 1_n 172_o b_o whether_o all_o thing_n be_v rule_v thereby_o 1_o 167_o b_o that_o even_o tyrant_n be_v but_o instrument_n thereof_o and_o that_o they_o be_v limit_v 1_n 172_o b_o whether_o counsel_n &_o admonition_n be_v take_v away_o thereby_o as_o may_v be_v object_v 1_n 176_o a_o thing_n happen_v by_o chance_n be_v under_o it_o ●_o 173_o a_o how_o sin_n do_v depend_v thereupon_o 1_o 173_o b_o how_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o man_n be_v otherwhiles_o thereby_o provoke_v to_o sin_n 1_o 186a_o by_o what_o token_n cicero_n teach_v that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v from_o natural_a reason_n 1_n 167_o b_o what_o thing_n some_o refer_v thereunto_o and_o what_o thing_n not_o 1_n 167_o b_o a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n thereby_o do_v about_o sin_n 1_o 206b_v a_o general_a opinion_n &_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n that_o without_o it_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o the_o world_n be_v it_o good_a or_o bad_a 1_o 199b_v that_o the_o same_o as_o touch_v his_o decree_n be_v as_o the_o iron_n and_o adamant_n and_o what_o be_v object_v against_o it_o 1_o 197_o ab_fw-la plato_n and_o other_o seem_v to_o streiten_fw-ge it_o into_o a_o narrow_a room_n and_o how_o 1_o 200_o a_o what_o thing_n some_o do_v exempt_a from_o it_o 1_o 171_o b_o 169_o b_o thing_n that_o come_v by_o chance_n serve_v thereunto_o 1_o 182_o b_o cicero_n call_v it_o a_o old_a soothsay_a wife_n of_o the_o stoike_n 1_o
unproperlie_o according_a to_o the_o common_a proverb_n a_o straieng_v tongue_n tell_v truth_n he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o death_n for_o they_o be_v capital_a fault_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v and_o he_o shall_v restore_v eight_o fold_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v pay_v much_o true_o it_o seem_v very_o hard_a to_o punish_v theft_n with_o death_n 2._o the_o law_n in_o some_o case_n stay_v a_o thief_n exod._n 22_o 2._o nevertheless_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o in_o that_o law_n of_o exodus_fw-la this_o be_v ordain_v that_o if_o a_o thief_n have_v come_v arm_v in_o the_o night_n with_o intent_n to_o steal_v any_o thing_n away_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v he_o and_o that_o without_o danger_n in_o this_o case_n when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o rich_a man_n do_v take_v away_o from_o the_o poor_a man_n his_o one_o only_o lamb_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o violence_n use_v and_o not_o a_o fraud_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o punishment_n be_v augment_v and_o he_o judge_v worthy_a of_o death_n restitution_n four_o fold_v restitution_n and_o as_o for_o the_o restore_n of_o four_o fold_n we_o have_v not_o only_o a_o law_n but_o also_o the_o example_n of_o zachaeus_n 8._o luke_n 19_o 8._o in_o the_o 19_o of_o luke_n if_o i_o have_v take_v aught_o from_o any_o man_n by_o deceit_n he_o say_v to_o christ_n i_o restore_v he_o four_o fold_n restitution_n seven_o fold_v restitution_n he_o say_v not_o i_o restore_v he_o double_a but_o to_o show_v his_o duty_n the_o more_o he_o choose_v to_o himself_o the_o straight_a punishment_n again_o there_o be_v a_o place_n in_o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o proverb_n 30._o verse_n 30._o where_o solomon_n say_v that_o a_o thief_n which_o be_v take_v shall_v restore_v seven_o fold_n in_o which_o place_n it_o may_v be_v gather_v as_o it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o judge_n to_o increase_v the_o punishment_n for_o at_o this_o time_n thief_n do_v restore_v seven_o fold_n some_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v not_o there_o mean_v of_o any_o precise_a number_n in_o the_o restitution_n of_o thing_n take_v away_o but_o that_o a_o thief_n shall_v be_v compel_v to_o make_v a_o perfect_a restitution_n in_o that_o place_n he_o compare_v the_o sin_n of_o theft_n and_o adultery_n together_o and_o will_v show_v and_o declare_v adultery_n to_o be_v the_o great_a if_o a_o thief_n have_v no_o other_o intent_n but_o to_o satisfy_v hunger_n it_o redound_v not_o to_o his_o shame_n if_o he_o be_v take_v he_o be_v compel_v to_o yield_v again_o that_o which_o he_o have_v take_v away_o if_o he_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n he_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n 25._o whether_o david_n be_v punish_v above_o four_o fold_n 2._o sam._n 16_o 22._o 2._o sam._n 12_o 18._o &_o 13_o 28._o &_o 18_o 14._o and_o 1._o kin._n 2_o 25._o touch_v the_o restitution_n of_o four_o fold_n it_o may_v seem_v that_o david_n be_v punish_v not_o only_o to_o the_o proportion_n of_o four_o fold_n but_o of_o above_o eight_o fold_n for_o his_o ten_o concubine_n be_v defile_v by_o absalon_n and_o although_o himself_o be_v not_o slay_v yet_o be_v he_o reserve_v to_o great_a affliction_n for_o four_o of_o his_o son_n be_v consume_v first_o he_o who_o he_o have_v by_o bethsaba_n than_o amnon_n afterward_o absalon_n last_o adonias_n 3_o the_o crime_n of_o steal_v away_o of_o servant_n 5._o in_o gen._n 37_o verse_n 25._o the_o crime_n of_o steal_v away_o of_o servant_n punish_v by_o death_n deut._n 24_o 7._o exo._n 21_o 16._o gen._n 37_o 28._o matt._n 27_o 5._o or_o child_n and_o sell_v of_o they_o be_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n punish_v with_o death_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 48._o book_n of_o the_o digest_v and_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 24._o chapter_n the_o punishment_n which_o god_n appoint_v for_o the_o same_o do_v yet_o declare_v the_o grievousnes_n of_o the_o crime_n for_o this_o fault_n the_o hebrews_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v many_o year_n together_o vex_v by_o pharaoh_n in_o egypt_n assure_o the_o sell_v of_o christ_n drive_v judas_n to_o hang_v himself_o and_o in_o the_o end_n wrought_v confusion_n both_o to_o those_o that_o buy_v he_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n in_o the_o book_n zahor_n wherein_o be_v prayer_n which_o the_o jew_n repeat_v in_o the_o day_n of_o purification_n when_o they_o fast_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o their_o sin_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o ten_o rabbin_n of_o great_a name_n the_o which_o be_v slay_v by_o caesar_n adrianus_n for_o caesar_n demand_v of_o they_o what_o punishment_n their_o law_n take_v of_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v find_v guilty_a of_o steal_v free_a man_n away_o and_o sell_v they_o who_o wise_o answer_v out_o of_o deuteronomie_n 24_o 7._o that_o they_o be_v worthy_a of_o death_n whereupon_o the_o emperor_n put_v they_o to_o death_n lay_v to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n but_o what_o free_a man_n it_o be_v that_o he_o charge_v they_o to_o have_v sell_v it_o be_v not_o there_o express_v yet_o in_o their_o thalmud_n to_o the_o end_n to_o slander_n christ_n when_o they_o make_v a_o declaration_n of_o this_o fact_n they_o say_v it_o be_v joseph_n and_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o speak_v against_o all_o reason_n or_o likeliehood_n that_o after_o so_o many_o age_n these_o man_n shall_v be_v punish_v for_o a_o wickedness_n so_o long_o before_o commit_v they_o speak_v more_o absurdlie_o that_o soul_n remove_v from_o one_o to_o another_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ten_o brethren_n of_o joseph_n do_v remove_v into_o these_o ten_o rabbin_n and_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o be_v punish_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o well_o do_v and_o hospitality_n 4_o there_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o 4._o in_o 1._o cor._n 16._o verse_n 4._o corinthian_n basil_n the_o community_n of_o thing_n among_o the_o anabaptist_n be_v confit_v look_v in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr votis_fw-la pag._n 79._o put_v forth_o at_o basil_n the_o 16._o chapter_n wherein_o we_o be_v teach_v beneficence_n and_o liberality_n by_o the_o which_o and_o by_o such_o like_a the_o anabaptist_n which_o declare_v that_o among_o christian_n all_n thing_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a be_v confute_v for_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v true_a there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n to_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o distribute_v alm_n unto_o the_o poor_a for_o every_o one_o may_v take_v from_o who_o he_o will_v but_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n commend_v alm_n unto_o we_o they_o show_v plain_o that_o every_o one_o be_v a_o possessor_n of_o his_o own_o good_n although_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v with_o his_o needy_a neighbour_n of_o the_o fruit_n and_o profit_n which_o come_v of_o the_o same_o we_o see_v also_o in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n resist_v not_o paul_n in_o say_v what_o tell_v thou_o we_o of_o the_o jerosolomit_n have_v not_o we_o poor_a people_n of_o our_o own_o with_o we_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o find_v and_o reléeve_v suffer_v we_o to_o distribute_v our_o own_o good_n among_o our_o own_o poor_a but_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v paul_n determine_v that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o every_o church_n shall_v find_v their_o own_o poor_a but_o be_v also_o bind_v to_o reléeve_v the_o brethren_n of_o other_o church_n if_o their_o ability_n serve_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v their_o consent_n lace_v charity_n must_v be_v do_v in_o order_n yet_o not_o to_o be_v too_o straight_o lace_v for_o although_o that_o charity_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v in_o due_a order_n yet_o must_v it_o not_o be_v so_o straight_o lace_v as_o it_o shall_v have_v respect_n only_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v she_o own_o in_o deed_n we_o ought_v to_o begin_v with_o such_o as_o be_v our_o own_o but_o we_o be_v not_o there_o to_o make_v a_o stay_n furthermore_o in_o distribute_v of_o alm_n there_o must_v be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o the_o honesty_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o need_n wherefore_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 10._o gal._n 6_o 10._o let_v we_o do_v well_o unto_o all_o man_n especial_o unto_o those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n beside_o this_o there_o must_v be_v a_o special_a consideration_n have_v of_o they_o touch_v who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v give_v express_a commandment_n as_o be_v the_o father_n the_o mother_n the_o wife_n the_o child_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n thirdlie_o necessity_n must_v be_v regard_v for_o otherwise_o there_o happen_v case_n sometime_o wherein_o our_o help_n can_v be_v defer_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n in_o which_o time_n both_o father_n mother_n and_o the_o rest_n unto_o who_o we_o be_v
bind_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o also_o godly_a man_n shall_v after_o a_o sort_n bear_v with_o us._n but_o a_o stranger_n which_o meet_v we_o be_v so_o narrow_o drive_v and_o in_o such_o danger_n as_o he_o may_v not_o be_v overpass_o 5_o but_o out_o of_o such_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n order_n must_v be_v keep_v so_o that_o first_o we_o must_v do_v well_o unto_o they_o who_o god_n have_v join_v unto_o we_o by_o any_o mean_n of_o friendship_n lot_n augustine_n in_o this_o case_n admit_v lot_n wherefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_fw-la say_v if_o thou_o shall_v by_o chance_n meet_v by_o the_o way_n with_o two_o person_n of_o like_a honesty_n and_o necessity_n and_o have_v only_a so_o much_o as_o will_v reléeve_v one_o of_o they_o thou_o thus_o muse_v with_o thyself_o can_v do_v nothing_o better_a than_o even_o to_o draw_v cut_n which_o of_o they_o to_o gratify_v so_o shall_v thou_o say_v he_o gather_v by_o a_o certain_a aim_n that_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o be_v join_v to_o thou_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o some_o degree_n of_o conjunction_n because_o when_o we_o be_v bear_v none_o of_o we_o all_o choose_v to_o himself_o what_o associate_n friend_n enemy_n parent_n or_o kindred_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v these_o do_v happen_v unto_o every_o man_n by_o chance_n and_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v good_a unto_o those_o which_o he_o join_v to_o he_o and_o such_o be_v call_v his_o neighbour_n which_o word_n be_v not_o restrain_v only_o to_o the_o conjunction_n that_o we_o have_v with_o our_o kindred_n country_n or_o particular_a place_n for_o that_o which_o the_o greek_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o hebrews_n rehe_fw-ge the_o latin_n proximum_fw-la neighbour_n who_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v our_o neighbour_n in_o english_a a_o neighbour_n must_v be_v understand_v as_o touch_v they_o which_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n through_o any_o occasion_n do_v meet_v or_o be_v join_v unto_o we_o or_o be_v commend_v unto_o we_o be_v it_o by_o mean_n of_o kindred_n of_o friendship_n or_o of_o meeting_n by_o the_o way_n we_o be_v account_v to_o be_v their_o neighbour_n to_o who_o god_n do_v associate_v and_o join_v we_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o mean_n which_o appear_v in_o that_o man_n who_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v describe_v to_o have_v go_v down_o from_o jerusalem_n unto_o jerico_fw-la lord_n luk._n 10_o 36._o the_o parable_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o man_n be_v ill_o entreat_v by_o thief_n &_o be_v a_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o be_v a_o samaritane_n declare_v to_o be_v his_o neighbour_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n unto_o he_o and_o pertein_v to_o another_o kingdom_n he_o be_v neighbour_n to_o he_o because_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v meet_v with_o he_o in_o that_o case_n therefore_o he_o be_v the_o neighbour_n which_o defer_v not_o his_o help_n when_o there_o be_v present_a necessity_n that_o may_v not_o be_v defer_v and_o when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o help_n it_o be_v provide_v also_o that_o the_o name_n of_o a_o neighbour_n do_v not_o apperteine_v only_o unto_o kindred_n and_o acquaintance_n for_o elias_n go_v unto_o sarepta_n a_o place_n of_o the_o sidonite_n 11_o the_o example_n of_o elias_n 1._o kin._n 17_o 11_o and_o demand_v bread_n and_o water_n of_o a_o widow_n that_o widow_n will_v have_v use_v the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o charity_n namely_o to_o have_v reserve_v that_o little_a that_o be_v remain_v unto_o herself_o and_o her_o son_n but_o the_o prophet_n say_v go_v thy_o way_n and_o first_o give_v i_o of_o it_o the_o woman_n therefore_o when_o she_o will_v have_v follow_v the_o usual_a way_n of_o charity_n the_o private_a admonition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v let_v she_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o unjust_a for_o the_o widow_n know_v he_o to_o be_v both_o a_o prophet_n and_o a_o man_n of_o god_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v demand_v how_o she_o understand_v it_o be_v a_o stranger_n we_o can_v otherwise_o say_v but_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o motion_n and_o persuasion_n of_o god_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n for_o god_n say_v unto_o elias_n i_o will_v command_v a_o widow_n to_o feed_v thou_o wherefore_o 9_o 1._o kin._n 17_o 9_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o our_o neighbour_n life_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o bestow_v not_o only_o our_o good_n but_o also_o our_o soul_n that_o be_v our_o life_n as_o john_n witness_v when_o he_o say_v 16_o 1._o john_n 3_o 16_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v our_o life_n for_o our_o brethren_n even_o as_o christ_n do_v but_o as_o concern_v the_o sustentation_n of_o body_n first_o it_o behove_v that_o we_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o which_o according_a as_o we_o shall_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v promote_v by_o any_o kind_n of_o work_n so_o must_v we_o be_v the_o more_o incline_v to_o liberality_n so_o then_o we_o see_v that_o this_o widow_n have_v a_o godly_a meaning_n in_o that_o she_o will_v first_o have_v a_o regard_n unto_o herself_o and_o her_o child_n but_o afterward_o when_o she_o understand_v that_o this_o be_v a_o prophet_n &_o that_o it_o do_v chéefelie_o belong_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o have_v he_o sustain_v she_o first_o minister_v unto_o he_o when_o as_o nevertheless_o she_o have_v it_o promise_v she_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o want_n of_o sustenance_n for_o she_o and_o her_o child_n it_o now_o appear_v by_o that_o we_o have_v speak_v that_o there_o be_v a_o order_n to_o be_v use_v in_o charity_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o that_o the_o same_o must_v not_o be_v limit_v within_o any_o streict_n bound_n 6_o but_o see_v we_o be_v in_o hand_n with_o alm_n we_o must_v answer_v that_o common_a &_o gross_a error_n wherein_o man_n think_v although_o they_o be_v entangle_v in_o the_o great_a crime_n and_o do_v not_o repent_v they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o attain_v to_o everlasting_a life_n so_o that_o they_o give_v alm_n liberal_o and_o they_o oftentimes_o obtrude_v unto_o we_o the_o say_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n of_o luke_n 11._o a_o place_n out_o of_o luke_n 11._o give_v alm_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v clean_o unto_o you_o which_o place_n require_v a_o diligent_a examination_n for_o that_o same_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d give_v may_v as_o well_o be_v the_o indicative_a mood_n as_o the_o imperative_fw-it if_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o indicative_a we_o may_v say_v you_o give_v alm_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v clean_o unto_o you_o 41._o verse_n 41._o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o you_o be_v full_a of_o wickedness_n give_v unto_o ravine_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n give_v some_o alm_n to_o the_o poor_a you_o think_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v clean_o unto_o you_o as_o if_o this_o kind_n of_o speech_n be_v a_o fine_a quip_n but_o if_o we_o read_v it_o after_o the_o common_a translation_n in_o the_o imperative_fw-it mode_n augustine_n in_o his_o enchiridion_n to_o laurence_n give_v we_o this_o manner_n of_o interpretation_n that_o when_o it_o be_v say_v give_v you_o alm_n it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o do_v thereof_o must_v first_o begin_v with_o ourselves_o to_o wit_n that_o we_o ourselves_o convert_v first_o unto_o god_n and_o then_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v clean_o unto_o us._n for_o it_o be_v say_v 24._o eccl._n 30_o 24._o have_v pity_n upon_o thy_o own_o soul_n please_v god_n so_o as_o in_o give_v of_o alm_n let_v we_o first_o give_v ourselves_o bountifullie_o unto_o god_n and_o then_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v clean_o according_a to_o that_o which_o in_o another_o place_n he_o teach_v make_v you_o the_o tree_n good_a 33._o matt._n 12_o 33._o and_o his_o fruit_n good_a the_o three_o exposition_n be_v to_o say_v that_o christ_n sow_v the_o word_n among_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n with_o who_o he_o dine_v but_o these_o man_n be_v careful_a above_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o cleanse_n of_o their_o platter_n and_o cup_n on_o the_o other_o side_n christ_n persuade_v they_o to_o make_v small_a account_n of_o outward_a cleanliness_n &_o he_o say_v see_v you_o be_v greevouslie_o load_v with_o ravine_n and_o deceit_n cleanse_v you_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v inward_a make_v clean_o your_o heart_n and_o conscience_n which_o can_v be_v do_v unless_o there_o be_v faith_n for_o it_o be_v write_v 9_o acts._n 15_o 9_o purifieng_v their_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o as_o touch_v outward_a action_n give_v you_o alm_n and_o then_o all_o thing_n will_v be_v clean_o unto_o you_o for_o concern_v outward_a thing_n whether_o the_o platter_n be_v clean_o or_o the_o cup_n wash_v
the_o last_o hour_n of_o his_o life_n do_v receive_v the_o faith_n which_o he_o can_v neither_o testify_v by_o word_n nor_o yet_o by_o sign_n further_n our_o adversary_n also_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o baptism_n of_o request_n &_o desire_n flaminis_fw-la baptismus_fw-la flaminis_fw-la which_o they_o call_v the_o baptism_n of_o fire_n for_o whenas_o a_o man_n beléeve_v desire_v baptism_n &_o can_v enjoy_v it_o &_o die_v they_o say_v he_o be_v save_v which_o also_o ambrose_n judge_v of_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n emperor_n what_o ambrose_n judge_v of_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n which_o come_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o be_v slay_v by_o the_o way_n how_o then_o do_v they_o regard_v this_o sentence_n unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o the_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n &_o c_o if_o a_o request_n &_o desire_n be_v there_o sufficient_a why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v sufficient_a in_o child_n the_o election_n of_o god_n and_o the_o promise_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherewith_o we_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v endue_v see_v they_o be_v bear_v of_o faithful_a progenitor_n one_o john_n 3._o 5._o the_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n take_v to_o be_v both_o one_o moreover_o christ_n talk_v there_o with_o nichodemus_n who_o be_v of_o a_o perfect_a age_n and_o may_v have_v have_v the_o benefit_n both_o of_o water_n and_o of_o a_o minister_n there_o be_v some_o also_o which_o there_o by_o the_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n understand_v all_o one_o thing_n so_o as_o the_o latter_a word_n express_v the_o former_a for_o water_n allegoricallie_o do_v diverse_a time_n signify_v grace_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o christ_n show_v when_o he_o talk_v with_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n and_o when_o he_o cry_v 28._o john_n 4._o 10._o john_n 7._o 37._o joel._n 2._o 28._o he_o that_o thirst_v let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o drink_n and_o in_o joel_n it_o be_v say_v i_o will_v pour_v upon_o you_o clean_a water_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o a_o manner_n thou_o have_v in_o that_o which_o john_n baptist_n say_v of_o christ_n 11._o matt._n 3._o 11._o he_o that_o come_v after_o i_o he_o baptise_v with_o fire_n and_o with_o the_o spirit_n in_o which_o place_n fire_n and_o the_o spirit_n signify_v all_o one_o thing_n but_o the_o former_a answer_n be_v plain_a enough_o 19_o there_o be_v another_o place_n in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n 14._o verse_n 14._o but_o the_o uncircumcised_a manchilde_n in_o who_o flesh_n the_o foreskinne_n be_v not_o circumcise_v that_o soul_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o his_o people_n out_o who_o flesh_n shall_v not_o be_v circumcise_v his_o soul_n shall_v be_v root_v out_o because_o he_o have_v break_v my_o covenant_n behold_v say_v they_o the_o young_a hebrew_n which_o die_v without_o circumcision_n be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o and_o that_o as_o touch_v the_o soul_n wherefore_o it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v have_v salvation_n howbeit_o this_o place_n also_o proove_v but_o little_a which_o even_o our_o adversary_n shall_v be_v compel_v to_o grant_v forsomuch_o as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n in_o the_o 4._o sentence_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n book_n when_o he_o follow_v this_o opinion_n that_o child_n which_o die_v before_o the_o viij_o day_n be_v uncircumcised_a be_v damn_v be_v forsake_v sentence_n how_o the_o hebrew_n understand_v that_o sentence_n and_o for_o the_o more_o part_n be_v not_o defend_v by_o the_o writer_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o matter_n the_o hebrew_n refer_v these_o word_n unto_o he_o which_o after_o the_o viij_o day_n be_v not_o circumcise_v and_o they_o understand_v the_o cut_n off_o to_o be_v as_o concern_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o shall_v die_v before_o his_o natural_a time_n which_o opinion_n seem_v to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o moses_n 24_o exod._n 4._o 24_o where_o the_o angel_n will_v slay_v he_o because_o he_o have_v not_o circumcise_v his_o son_n but_o this_o proof_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v sufficient_a enough_o because_o it_o be_v not_o read_v that_o the_o angel_n mean_v to_o kill_v the_o child_n but_o the_o father_n unless_o perhaps_o they_o bring_v this_o testimony_n only_o to_o the_o intent_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o threaten_n be_v to_o kill_v the_o body_n there_o be_v other_o which_o understand_v that_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o among_o the_o people_n because_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o israelite_n nor_o their_o church_n neither_o shall_v be_v number_v in_o the_o common_a weal_n there_o to_o obtain_v neither_o heritage_n nor_o office_n now_o see_v these_o two_o interpretation_n may_v be_v use_v it_o make_v the_o argument_n to_o be_v weak_a but_o lest_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o give_v the_o slip_n 20_o look_v part_n 4_o cap._n 7._o art_n 20_o admit_v that_o god_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o the_o loss_n of_o eternal_a life_n yet_o may_v we_o expound_v that_o these_o thing_n must_v not_o so_o be_v understand_v except_o when_o the_o circumcise_a shall_v be_v come_v to_o age_n and_o shall_v consent_v to_o the_o negligence_n of_o his_o elder_n which_o do_v not_o circumcise_v he_o otherwise_o if_o he_o himself_o shall_v circumcise_v himself_o and_o shall_v detest_v that_o which_o the_o parent_n do_v towards_o he_o he_o shall_v not_o deserve_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o but_o rather_o to_o be_v commend_v so_o must_v the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v understand_v if_o their_o happen_v a_o consent_n of_o omit_v circumcision_n he_o be_v worthy_a to_o perish_v he_o i_o mean_v shall_v be_v cut_v off_o but_o if_o so_o be_v he_o depart_v uncircumcised_a before_o he_o have_v power_n to_o circumcise_v himself_o he_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o merry_a of_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o meet_v to_o judge_v rash_o of_o he_o but_o see_v he_o may_v belong_v to_o the_o predestination_n or_o to_o the_o election_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o come_v of_o godly_a ancestor_n we_o may_v hope_v well_o of_o he_o and_o the_o self_n same_o judgement_n in_o all_o respect_n be_v to_o be_v give_v of_o this_o sentence_n that_o be_v of_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o entreat_v of_o before_o namely_o 5._o john_n 3._o 5._o unless_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o say_v since_o our_o adversary_n be_v constrain_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o to_o understand_v modest_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o thy_o shall_v so_o great_o wrangle_v about_o this_o sentence_n by_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v now_o allege_v it_o be_v easy_o prove_v that_o our_o young_a child_n see_v now_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o promise_n of_o the_o covenant_n they_o seem_v to_o be_v ingraff_v to_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o baptism_n even_o as_o the_o child_n of_o the_o hebrew_n although_o they_o be_v young_a one_o be_v circumcise_v the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o temple_n wherein_o be_v entreat_v of_o sundry_a corruption_n of_o baptism_n while_o i_o earnest_o think_v upon_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n which_v solomon_n make_v end_n in_o 2._o kin_n 8._o at_o the_o end_n that_o come_v to_o my_o remembrance_n which_o augustin_n have_v in_o a_o certain_a oration_n to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o a_o temple_n to_o wit_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o outward_a temple_n do_v also_o pertain_v unto_o we_o who_o be_v the_o true_a temple_n of_o god_n 17._o the_o dedication_n of_o a_o temple_n be_v apply_v unto_o us._n verse_n 17._o wherefore_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o three_o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v holy_a which_o be_v you_o 17._o verse_n 17._o further_o we_o have_v in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n 19_o verse_n 19_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o we_o err_v in_o the_o dedicate_a of_o any_o of_o both_o temple_n the_o outward_a temple_n be_v then_o dedicate_v when_o we_o begin_v to_o apply_v it_o to_o holy_a use_n baptize_v godly_a man_n be_v visible_a consecrate_v when_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o godly_a man_n be_v then_o visible_o consecrate_v unto_o god_n when_o they_o be_v wash_v in_o holy_a baptism_n but_o this_o must_v be_v provide_v that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o see_v we_o be_v to_o entreat_v of_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v meet_v we_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n of_o what_o
strength_n the_o name_n of_o dedication_n be_v of_o in_o hebrew_a there_o be_v two_o verb_n chanac_n and_o cadasch_n which_o in_o the_o conjugation_n hiphil_fw-la have_v hicdisch_n and_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o sanctify_v but_o chanac_n signify_v to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v in_o the_o first_o principle_n wherefore_o solomon_n in_o the_o proverb_n the_o 22._o 6._o verse_n 6._o chapter_n write_v chanoc_n jannaar_n aalpi_n darco_fw-mi which_o be_v instruct_v a_o child_n according_a to_o his_o way_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o his_o capacity_n will_v serve_v 14._o gen._n 14._o verse_n 14._o and_o in_o genesis_n we_o read_v that_o abraham_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o lot_n arm_v eth_n chanicau_n his_o house_n bear_v servant_n who_o he_o have_v train_v not_o only_o in_o religion_n but_o also_o in_o necessary_a art_n moreover_o that_o verb_n signify_v to_o dedicate_v because_o it_o be_v then_o do_v so_o soon_o as_o we_o begin_v to_o use_v any_o thing_n wherefore_o chrysostom_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v that_o consecration_n or_o dedication_n be_v then_o do_v so_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o begin_v to_o use_v it_o and_o not_o only_o be_v temple_n dedicate_v but_o many_o thing_n else_o as_o a_o house_n and_o therefore_o the_o title_n of_o the_o 30._o house_n dedication_n of_o private_a house_n psal_n be_v schir_n channucath_n both_o jedavid_n that_o be_v the_o dedication_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n then_o also_o man_n be_v say_v to_o enter_v their_o house_n when_o they_o first_o begin_v to_o eat_v to_o drink_v and_o to_o dwell_v therein_o which_o thing_n the_o godly_a without_o prayer_n and_o thanks_o give_v use_v not_o to_o do_v therefore_o david_n when_o he_o have_v dedicate_v his_o house_n make_v a_o song_n or_o psalm_n wherein_o both_o he_o himself_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n and_o also_o pray_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v godly_a religious_o and_o ho_o use_v of_o such_o dedication_n also_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n 5._o verse_n 5._o wherein_o be_v deliver_v precept_n of_o warfare_n very_o god_n will_v that_o many_o shall_v be_v except_v from_o the_o war_n and_o those_o among_o the_o rest_n which_o when_o they_o have_v build_v a_o house_n have_v not_o after_o dedication_n use_v the_o same_o and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o nehemias_n there_o be_v a_o dedication_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o a_o city_n thereof_o nch._n 12._o 27_o dedication_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o a_o city_n &_o the_o manner_n thereof_o which_o be_v no_o thing_n else_o but_o that_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n be_v make_v up_o the_o people_n together_o with_o the_o levite_n and_o priest_n and_o also_o the_o prince_n go_v thither_o and_o there_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n because_o the_o wall_n be_v re-edify_v and_o pray_v that_o the_o city_n may_v be_v righteous_o use_v after_o which_o manner_n likewise_o before_o we_o take_v meat_n we_o also_o consecrate_v the_o same_o 31._o consecrate_v of_o meat_n gen._n 1._o 31._o not_o that_o we_o think_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v therein_o or_o that_o it_o be_v evil_a in_o his_o own_o nature_n because_o god_n see_v all_o thing_n that_o he_o make_v and_o they_o be_v exceed_o good_a and_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n very_o well_o say_v 9_o 1._o tim._n 4._o 9_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v make_v be_v good_a &_o that_o therefore_o nothing_o must_v be_v reject_v which_o be_v take_v with_o thanksgiving_n for_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o prayer_n but_o in_o our_o consecration_n we_o first_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n that_o he_o have_v provide_v for_o we_o these_o help_n of_o life_n further_o we_o crave_v that_o our_o body_n may_v not_o be_v hurt_v by_o they_o because_o we_o distemper_v ourselves_o whereby_o we_o afterward_o fall_v easy_o into_o sickness_n and_o while_o we_o be_v load_v with_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n we_o can_v be_v no_o apt_a instrument_n either_o of_o reason_n or_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 2_o wherefore_o it_o be_v very_o commendable_a that_o after_o this_o manner_n we_o shall_v consecrate_v all_o thing_n so_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o begin_v to_o use_v they_o that_o be_v to_o wit_n as_o well_o by_o thanksgiving_n as_o by_o prayer_n so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o disallow_v such_o a_o custom_n constantinoble_n the_o dedication_n of_o byzantium_n or_o constantinoble_n constantine_n the_o great_a when_o he_o have_v repair_v byzantium_n and_o have_v determine_v to_o use_v that_o city_n for_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n will_v consecrate_v the_o same_o to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o dedication_n thereof_o he_o call_v three_o hundred_o and_o 18_o father_n which_o at_o that_o time_n hold_v the_o synod_n of_o nice_a the_o same_o emperor_n also_o go_v to_o jerusalem_fw-la build_v a_o very_a sumptuous_a temple_n unto_o christ_n and_o deck_v it_o with_o precious_a offering_n with_o gold_n i_o mean_v with_o silver_n and_o with_o precious_a stone_n and_o he_o call_v away_o those_o bishop_n which_o hold_v a_o council_n at_o tyrus_n that_o they_o will_v come_v to_o dedicate_v the_o same_o and_o as_o eusebius_n show_v that_o dedication_n consist_v of_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n of_o praise_n unto_o god_n of_o prayer_n and_o of_o thankesgiving_n and_o hereof_o as_o i_o think_v christian_n from_o whence_o spang_v the_o dedication_n of_o temple_n among_o the_o christian_n the_o dedication_n of_o temple_n have_v original_a and_o beginning_n among_o the_o christian_n for_o i_o find_v not_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o temple_n be_v dedicate_v before_o that_o time_n neither_o must_v this_o be_v unspoken_a of_o that_o the_o hebrew_n accustom_v to_o dedicate_v temple_n not_o only_o which_o be_v new_o build_v but_o also_o those_o which_o be_v repair_v and_o cleanse_v from_o uncleanness_n this_o they_o do_v when_o after_o the_o return_n out_o of_o persia_n they_o have_v repair_v anew_o the_o temple_n and_o altar_n 37._o nehe._n 12._o 39_o 1._o mach._n 4._o verse_n 37._o also_o judas_n machabeus_n reform_v the_o temple_n when_o it_o be_v pollute_v by_o the_o ethnic_n with_o the_o most_o filthy_a idolatry_n of_o antiochus_n yea_o and_o yet_o still_o in_o the_o papacy_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v retain_v such_o renew_a dedication_n be_v in_o the_o greek_a call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o latin_a we_o may_v call_v renovalia_n or_o renovales_fw-la dies_fw-la that_o be_v renewal_n or_o day_n of_o renew_v which_o be_v not_o once_o celebrate_v but_o the_o solemnity_n of_o they_o be_v do_v every_o year_n at_o one_o time_n moreover_o in_o the_o execute_n of_o they_o the_o papist_n have_v get_v to_o themselves_o many_o thing_n as_o well_o from_o the_o hebrew_n as_o from_o the_o ethnic_n pretend_v that_o they_o very_o much_o profit_v the_o ignorant_a by_o the_o ceremony_n which_o they_o use_v howbeit_o what_o the_o jew_n do_v in_o their_o dedication_n the_o holy_a history_n do_v plain_o teach_v but_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o ethnic_n be_v sundry_a and_o manifold_a dedication_n the_o ethnic_a dedication_n whereof_o we_o read_v many_o thing_n in_o tulli_n especial_o in_o the_o oration_n for_o his_o house_n unto_o the_o high_a bishop_n there_o the_o soothsayer_n must_v hold_v fast_o a_o post_n and_o speak_v certain_a set_v word_n without_o stut_v or_o stammer_n in_o his_o tongue_n but_o with_o a_o firm_a and_o constant_a mind_n also_o man_n be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o ethnic_n &_o thereof_o cicero_n render_v a_o reason_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la namely_o that_o the_o mystery_n which_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o be_v certain_a entrance_n of_o man_n life_n whereby_o man_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o rude_a and_o rustical_a to_o a_o more_o humane_a and_o civil_a kind_n of_o life_n child_n the_o initiate_a of_o child_n yea_o and_o child_n be_v say_v to_o be_v initiate_v or_o enter_v when_o as_o they_o be_v wean_v because_o they_o be_v then_o train_v up_o namely_o from_o milk_n unto_o a_o more_o substantial_a meat_n and_o drink_v wherefore_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v consecrate_v unto_o the_o goddess_n edidia_n and_o potina_n the_o thing_n very_o be_v ethnicall_a but_o yet_o a_o token_n of_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o holy_a history_n wherein_o it_o be_v show_v 8._o gen._n 21._o 8._o that_o abraham_n make_v a_o banquet_n when_o he_o wean_v isaac_n wherein_o no_o doubt_n but_o thanksgiving_n and_o prayer_n be_v place_v among_o henoch_n gen._n 5._o 21._o chanoch_n that_o be_v henoch_n also_o chanoch_n which_o live_v before_o the_o flood_n have_v his_o name_n of_o consecration_n or_o dedication_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o be_v by_o some_o mystery_n of_o which_o although_o i_o know_v that_o the_o hebrew_n do_v fable_n yet_o have_v i_o not_o what_o to_o